ANNA BOWMAN DODD IN AND OUT OF THREE NORMANDY INNS il 12; Ml 'm < ^ ■m rt H ^Z:^ 3 t3 -9 O" ft 1 o a IN AND OUT THREE NORMANDY INN^ BY ANNA BOWMAN DODD AUTHOR OF "CATHEDRAL DAYS," "THE AMERICAN HUSBAND IN PARIS, "FALAISE," "THE TOWN OF THE CONQUEROR," ETC. Illustrated by C. S. REINHART and Other Artists BOSTON LITTLE, BROWN, AND COMPANY 1909 K:.i?JU^ Copyright, 1892, By united states BOOK COJIPANY (All rights reserved.) BOSTON Alfred Modge & Son Inc. Printers TO EDMUND CLARENCE STEDMAN. My Dear Mr. Stedman : To this little company of Norman men and wom- en, you will, I know, extend a kindly greeting, if only because of their nationality. To your courtesy, possibly, you will add the leaven of interest, when you perceive— as you must— that their qualities are all their own, their defects being due solely to my own imperfect presentment. With sincere esteem, ANNA BOWMAN DODD. New York. CONTENTS. VILLERVILLB. CHAPTER I. A Landing on the Coast of France, II. A Spring Drive, III. From an Inn Window, IV. Out on a Mussel-bed, V. The Village, . VI. A Pagan Cobbler, . VII. Some Norman Landladies, . VIII. The Quartiek Latin on the Beach, IX. A Norman Household, . X. Ernestine, PAGE 1 13 24 35 45 55 66 80 84 93 ALONG AN OLD POST-ROAD. XL To AN Old Manoir, XII. A Norman Cur6, XIII. Honfleur— New and Old, 103 112 127 DIVES. XIV. A Coast Drive, XV. GUILLAUME-LE-CONqUi&RANT, 147 161 viii CONTENTS. CHAPTER PAGE XVI. The Green Bench, 169 XVII, The World that Came to Dives, . .177 XVIII. The Conversation of Patriots, . . . 183 XIX. In La Chambre des Marmousets, . . 188 TWO BANQUETS AT DIVES. XX. A Seventeenth Century Revival, . . 197 XXI, The After- Dinner Talk of Three Great Ladies, 204 XXII. A Nineteenth Century Breakfast, . . 225 A LITTLE JOURNEY ALONG THE COAST. XXIII. A Night in a Caen Attic, .... 247 XXIV. A Day at Bayeux and St. L6, . . . 266 XXV. A Dinner at Coutances, .... 276 XXVI. A Scene in a Norman Court, . . . 290 XXVII. The Fete-Dieu— A June Christmas, . . 302 XXVIII. By Land to Mont St. Michel, . , .318 MONT ST. MICHEL, XXIX. By Sea to the Poulard Inn, . . . 335 XXX. The Pilgkims and the Shrine — An His- torical Omelette, 350 LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS. GurLLAXJME-LE-COXQUERAKT — DiVES, Frontispiece A Village Street— Villertille, On the Beach — Villertille, A Sale of Mussels— Villertille, A Villertille Fish-wife, .... A Departure— Villertille, The Ixn at Dites— Guillaume-le-Conouerant, Chambre de la Pucelle— Dites, Chajibre des Marmousets— Dites, Madame de Setigne, Chambre de la Pucelle— Dites, Chateau Fontaine le Henri, near Caen, An Exciting Moment— A Coutances Interior, A Street in Coutances— Eglise Saint-Pierre, Mont Saint Michel, Mont Saint Michel Snail-gatherers, FACING PAGE 18 24 36 46 66 t44 1G8 194 204 224 248 302 3G8 334 364 VILLERVILLE. AN INN BY THE SEA. THREE NORMANDY INNS. CHAPTEE I. A LANDING ON THE COAST OF FEANCE. Narrow streets with sinuous curves ; dwarfed houses with mi- nute shops pro- truding" o n i n c h - w i d e sidewalks; a tiny casino perched like a bird-cage on a tiny scaffolding ; bath-houses dumped on the beach; fishing-smacks drawn up along the shore like so many Greek galleys; and, fringing- the cliffs — the encroachment of the nineteenth cen- tury — a row of fantastic sea-side villas. This was Villerville. Over an arch of roses ; across a broad line of olives, hawthorns, laburnums, and syring-as, straight out to sea — 4 THREE NORMANDY INNS. This was the view from our windows. Our inn was bounded by the sea on one side, and on the other by a narrow village street. The dis- tance between g-ood and evil has been known to be quite as short as that which lay between these two thoroughfares. It was only a matter of a strip of land, an edge of cliff, and a shed of a house bear- ing the proud title of Hotel-sur-Mer. Two nights before, our arrival had made quite a stir in the village streets. The inn had given us a characteristic French welcome; its eye had measured us before it had extended its hand. Be- fore reaching the inn and the village, however, we had already tasted of the flavor of a genuine Nor- man welcome. Our experience in adventure had begun on the Ha\T;e quays. Our expedition could hardly be looked upon as perilous ; yet it was one that, from the first, evi- dently appealed to the French imagination ; half Havre was hanging over the stone wharves to see us start. " Dame, only English women are up to that ! " — for all the world is English, in French eyes, when an adventurous folly is to be committed. This was one view of our temerity ; it was the comment of age and experience of the world, of the cap with the short pipe in her mouth, over which curved, downward, a bulbous, fiery-hued nose that met the pipe. " C'est heaudout de meme, when one is young — and rich." This was a generous partisan, a girl with a miniature copy of her own round face — a copy that was tied up in a shawl, very snug ; it was a TBREE NOUMANDT INN8. 5 bundle tliat could not possibly be in anj' one's way, even on a somewhat prolonged tour of obser- vation of Havre's shipping interests. " And the blonde one — what do you think of her, liehi ? " This was the blouse's query. The tassel of the cotton night-cap nodded, interrogatively, toward the object on which the twinkling ex-mariner's eye had fixed itself — on Charm's slender figure, and on the yellow half-moon of hair framing her face. There was but one verdict concerning the blonde beauty ; she was a creature made to be stared at. The staring was suspended only when the bargaining went on ; for Havre, clearly, was a sailor and merchant first ; its knowledge of a woman's good points was rated merely as its sec- ond-best talent. Meanwhile, our bargaining for the sailboat was being conducted on the principles peculiar to French traffic ; it had all at once assumed the as- pect of dramatic complication. It had only been necessary for us to stop on our lounging stroll along the stone wharves, diverting our gaze for a moment from the grotesque assortment of old houses that, before now, had looked down on so many naval engagements, and innocently to ask a brief question of a nautical gentleman, pictur- esquely attired in a blue shirt and a scarlet beret, for the quays immediately to swarm with jerseys and red caps. Each beret was the owner of a boat ; and each jersey had a A^oice louder than his brother's. Presently the battle of tongues was drowning all other sounds. e THREE NORMANDY INNS. In point of fact, there were no other sounds to drown. All other business along- the quays was being" temporarily suspended ; the most thrilling event of the day was centring in us and our treaty. Until this bargain was closed, other matters could wait. For a Frenchman has the true instinct of the dramatist; business he rightly considers as only an entr'acte in life ; the serious thing is the scene de theatre, wherever it takes place. Therefore it was that the black, shaky-looking houses, lean- ing over the quays, were now populous with frowsy heads and cotton nightcaps. The captains from the adjacent sloops and tug-boats formed an outer circle about the closer ring made by the competi- tors for our favors, while the loungers along the parapets, and the owners of top seats on the shin- ing quay steps, may be said to have been in posses- sion of orchestra stalls from the first rising of the curtain. A baker's boy and two fish-wives, trundling their carts, stopped to witness the last act of the play. Even the dogs beneath the carts, as they sank, panting, to the ground, followed, with red-rimmed eyes, the closing scenes of the little drama. " Allans, let us end this," cried a piratical-looking captain, in a loud, masterful voice. And he named a price lower than the others had bid. He would take us across — yes, us and our luggage, and land us — yes, at Villerville, for that. The baker's boy gave a long, slow whistle, with relish. " JDame ! " he ejaculated, between his teeth, as he turned away. THREE NORMANDY INNS. 7 The rival captains at first had dra'ttTi back ; they had looked at their comrade darkly, beneath their berets, as they might at a deserter with whom they meant to deal — later on. But at his last words they smiled a smile of grim humor. Beneath the beards a whisper grew ; w^hatever its import, it had the power to move all the hard mouths to laughter. As they also turned away, their shrug- ging shoulders and the scorn in their light laugh- ter seemed to hand us over to our fate. In the teeth of this smile, our captain had swung his boat round and we were stepping into her. " Au revoir — au revoir et a hientot ! " The group that was left to hang over the para- pets and to wave us its farewell, w^as a thin one. Only the professional loungers took part in this last act of courtesy. There was a cluster of caps, dazzlingly white against the blue of the sky ; a collection of highly decorated noses and of old hands ribboned with wrinkles, to nod and bob and ■wave down the cracked-voiced " honjours." But the audience that had gathered to witness the closing of the bargain had melted awa}' with the moment of its conclusion. Long ere this moment of our embarkation the wide stone street facing the water had become suddenly deserted. The curious-eyed heads and the cotton nightcaps had been swal- lowed up in the hollows of the dark, little windows. The baker's boy had long since mounted his broad basket, as if it were an ornamental head-dress, and whistling, had turned a sharp comer, swallowed up, he also, by the sudden gloom that lay between 8 THREE NORMANDY INNS. . the narrow streets. The sloop -owners had linked arms with the defeated captains, and were walking off toward their respective boats, whistling a gay little air. " Colinette au bois s'en alia En sautillant par-ci, par-la ; Trala deridera, trnla, dej-id-er-a-a" One jersey-clad figure was singing lustily as he dropped with a spring into his boat. He began to coil the loose ropes at once, as if the disappoint- ments in life were only a necessary interruption, to be accepted philosophically, to this, the serious business of his days. We were soon afloat, far out from the land of either shores. Between the two, sea and river meet ; is the river really trying to lose itself in the sea, or is it hopelessly attempting to swallow the sea ? The green line that divides them will never give you the answer : it changes hour by hour, day by day ; now it is like a knife-cut, deep and straight ; and now like a ribbon that wavers and flutters, ty- ing together the blue of the great ocean and the sil- ver of the Seine. Close to the lips of the mighty mouth lie the two shores. In that fresh May sun- shine Havre glittered and bristled, was aglow with a thousand tints and tones; but we sailed and sailed away from her, and behold, already she had melted into her cliffs. Opposite, nearing with every dip of the dun-colored sail into the blue seas, was the Calvados coast ; in its turn it glis- tened, and in its young spring verdure it had the lustre of a rough-hewn emerald. THREE NORMANDY INNS. 9 " Que voulez-vous, inesdames ? Who could have tohl that the wind woidd play us such a trick % " The voice was the voice of our captain. With much affluence of gesture he was explaining — his treachery ! Our nearness to the coast had made the confession necessary. To the blandness of his smile, as he proceeded in his unabashed recital, succeeded a joained expression. We were not ac- cepting the situation with the true phlegm of philosophers ; he felt that he had just cause for jDrotest. What possible difference could it make to us whether we were landed at Trouville or at Yil- lerville ? But to him — to be accused of betraying two ladies— to allow the whole of the Havre quays to behold in him a man disgraced, dishonored! His was a tragic figure as he stood up, erect on the poop, to clap hands to a blue-clad breast, and to toss a black mane of hair in the golden air. " Dame ! Toujour s ete galant homme, moi ! I am known on both shores as the most gallant of men. But the most gallant of men cannot control the caprice of the wind ! " To which was added much abuse of the muddy bottoms, the strength of the undertow, and other marine disadvantages pecu- liar to Yillerville. It was a tragic figure, with gestures and voice to match. But it was evident that the Captain had taken his own measure mistakenly. In him the French stage had lost a comedian of the first mag- nitude. Much, therefore, we felt, was to be con- doned in one who doubtless felt so great a talent itching for expression. When next he smiled, we had revived to a keener appreciation of baffled 10 THREE NORMANDY INNS. g-enius ever on the scent for tlie capture of tliat fickle goddess, opportunity. The captain's smile was oiling a further word of explanation. " See, mesdames, they come ! they will soon land you on the beach ! " He was pointing to a boat smaller than our own, that now ran alongside. There had been frequent signallings between the two boats, a running up and do^vn of a small yellow flag which we had thought amazingly becoming to the marine land- scape, until we learned the true relation of the flag to the treacher}^ aboard our own craft. " You see, mesdames," smoothly continued our talented traitor, " you see how the waves run up on the beach. We could never, with this great sail, run in there. We should capsize. But behold, these are bathers, accustomed to the water — they will carry you — but as if you were feathers ! " And he pointed to the four outstretched, firml}^ -muscled arms, as if to warrant their powers of endurance. The two men had left their boat ; it was dancing on the water, at anchor. They were standing im- movable as pillars of stone, close to the gunwales of our craft. They were holding out their arms to us. Charm suddenly stood upright. She held out her hands like a child, to the least impressionable boatman. In an instant she was clasping his bronze throat. " All my life I've prayed for adventure. And at last it has come ! " This she cried, as she was carried high above the waves. " That's right, have no fear," answered her car- THREE NORMANDY INNS. 11 rier as he plunged onward, ploug-hing his way through the waters to the beach. Beneath my own feet there was a sudden swish and a swirl of restless, tumbling- waters. The motion, as my carrier buried his bared legs in the waves, was such as accomiDanies impossible flights described in dreams, through some unknown medium. The surging waters seemed struggling to submerge us both ; the two thin, tanned legs of the fisherman about whose neck I was clinging, appeared ridiculously inadequate to cleave a suc- cessful path through a sea of such strength as was running shoreward. " Madame does not appear to be used to this kind of travelling," i^ufted out my carrier, his con- versational instinct, apparently, not in the least dampened by his strenuous iDlunging through the spirited sea. "It happens every day — all the aris- tocrats land this way, when they come over by the little boats. It distracts and amuses them, they say. It helps to kill the ennui." " I should think it might, my feet are soaking ; sometimes wet feet " " Ah, that's a pity, you must get a better hold," sympathetically interrupted my fisherman, as he proceeded to hoist me higher up on his shoulder. I, or a sack of corn, or a basket of fish, they were all one to this strong back and to these toughened sinews. When he had adjusted his present load at a secure height, above the dashing of the spray, he went on talking. " Yes, when the rich suffer a little it is not such a bad thing, it makes a pleas- ant change — cela leur distrait. For instance, there 12 THREE NORMANDY INNS. is the Princess cle L , there's her villa, close by, with green blinds. She makes little excuses to go over to Havre, just for this — to be carried in the arms like an infant. You should hear her, she shouts and clajDS her hands! All the beach as- sembles to see her land. When she is wet she cries for joy. It is so difficult to amuse one's self, it appears, in the great world." " But, tlens, here w^e are, I feel the dry sands." I was dropped as lightly on them as if it had been indeed a bunch of feathers my fisherman had been carrying. And meanwhile, out yonder, across the billows, with airy gesture dramatically executed, our treach- erous captain was weaving us a theatrical salute. The infant mate was grinning like a gargoyle. They were both delightfully unconscious, appar- ently, of any event having transpired, during the afternoon's pleasuring, which could possibly tinge* the moment of parting with the hues of regret. " Pour les hagages, mesdames " Two dripping, outstretched hands, two berets doffed, two picturesque giants bowing low, with a Frenchman's grace — this, on the Trouville sands, was the last act of this little comedy of our land- ing on the coast of France. CHAPTER n. A SPEING DRIVE. The Trouville beacli was as empty as a desert. No other footfall, save our own, echoed along the broad board walks ; this Boule- vard des Italiens of the Nor- mand}' coast, under the sun of May was a shining- pave- ment that boasted only a company of jelly-fishes as loungers. Down below was a village, a white cluster of little wooden houses ; this was the village of the bath-houses. The hotels might have been monasteries deserted and abandoned, in obedience to a nod from Eome or from the home government. Not even a fisherman's net was spread a-drying, to stay the appetite with a sense of past favors done by the sea to mortals more fortunate than we. The whole face of nature was as indifferent as a rich relation grown callous to the voice of entreaty. There was no more hope of man apparently, than of nature, being moved by our necessity ; for man, to be moved, must primar- ily exist, and he was as conspicuously absent on 14 THREE NORMANDY INNS. this occasion as Genesis proves liim to have been on the fourth day of creation. Meanwhile we sat still, and took counsel to g-ether. The chief of the council suddenly pre- sented himself. It was a man in miniature. The masculine shape, as it loomed up in the distance, gradually separating- itself from the background of villa roofs and casino terraces, resolved itself into a figure stolid and sturdy, very brown of leg, and insolent of demeanor — swaggering along as if con- scious of there being a full-grown man buttoned up within a boy's ragged coat. The swagger was accompanied by a whistle, whose neat crispness announced habits of leisure and a sense of the re- fined pleasures of life ; for an artistic rendering of an aria from " La Fille de Madame Angot " was cutting the air with clear, high notes. The whistle and the brown legs suddenly came to a dead stop. The round blue eyes had caught sight of us : " Ouid-a-a ! " was this young Norman's saluta- tion. There was very little trouser left, and what there was of it was all pocket, apparently. Into the pockets the boy's hands were stuffed, along with his amazement ; for his face, round and full though it was, could not hold the full measure of his surprise. " We came over by boat — from Havre," we mur- mured meekly ; then, " Is there a cake-shop near ? " irrelevantly concbided Charm with an unmistak- able ring of distress in her tone. There was no need of any further explanation. These two hearty young appetites understood each other ; for hunger THREE NORMANDY INNS. 15 is a universal language, and cake a countersign common among tlie youth of all nations. " Until you came, you see, we couldn't leave the luggage," she went on. The blue eyes swex)t the line of our boxes as if the lad had taken his afternoon stroll with no other purpose than to guard them. " There are eight, and two umbrellas. Soyez tranquille, je voics atten- drai." It was the voice and accent of a man of the world, four feet high — a pocket edition, so to speak, in shabby binding. The brown legs hung, the next instant, over the tallest of the trunks. The skilful whistling was resumed at once ; our appear- ance and the boy's present occupation were mere interludes, we were made to understand ; his real business, that afternoon, was to do justice to the Lecoq's entire opera, and to keep his eye on the sea. Only once did he break down ; he left a high G hanging perilously in mid-air, to shout out " I like madeleines, I do ! " We assured him he should have a dozen. " Blen ! " and we saw him settling himself to await our return in patience. Up in the town the streets, as we entered them, were as emptj" as was the beach. Trouville might have been a buried city of antiquity. Yet, in spite of the desolation, it was French and foreign ; it welcomed us with an unmistakably friendly, com- panionable air. Why is it that one is made to feel the companionable element, by instantaneous pro- cess, as it were, in a Frenchman and in his towns % 16 THREE NORMANDY INNS. And by what mag-ic also does a French village or city, even at its least animated period, convey to one the fact of its nationality ? We made but ten steps progress through these silent streets, front- ing the beach, and yet, such was the subtle enigma of charm with which these dumb villas and mute shops were invested, that we walked along as if under the spell of fascination. Perhaps the charm is a matter of sex, after all : towns are feminine, in the wise French idiom, that idiom so delicate in discerning qualities of sex in inanimate objects, as the Greeks before them were clever in discovering" sex distinctions in the moral qualities. Trouville was so true a woman, that the coquette in her was alive and breathing even in this her moment of suspended animation. The closed blinds and iron shutters appeared to be winking at us, slylj^ as if warning us not to believe in this nightmare of desolation ; she was only sleeping, she wished us to understand ; the touch of the first Parisian would wake her into life. The features of her fashionable face, meanwhile, were arranged with perfect composure ; even in slumber she had pre- served her woman's instinct of orderly grace ; not a sign was awry, not a window-blind gave hint of rheumatic hinges, or of shattered vertebrae; all the machinery was in order ; the faintest pressure on the electrical button, the button that connects this lady of the sea with the Paris Bourse and the Boulevards, and how gayly, how agilely would this Trouville of the villas and the beaches spring into Hfe! The listless glances of the few tailors and cob- THREE NORMANDY INNS. 17 biers who, with suspended thread, now looked after us, seemed dazed — as if they could not be- lieve in the reality of two early tourists. A wom- an's head, here and there, leaned over to us from a high window ; even these feminine eyes, how- ever, appeared to be glued with the long- winter's lethargy of dull sleej) ; they betrayed no edge of surprise or curiosity. The sun alone, shining with spendthrift glorj^ flooding- the narrow streets and low houses with a late afternoon stream of color, was the sole inhabitant who did not blink at us, bovinely, with dulled vision. Half an hour later we were speeding along the roadway. Half an hour — and Trouville might have been a thousand miles away. Inland, the eye plunged over nests of clover, across the tops of the apple and jDeach trees, frosted now with blos- soms, to some farm interiors. The familiar Nor- mandy features could be quickly spelled out, one by one. It was the milking-'hour. The fields were crowded with cattle and women ; some of the cows were standing immovable, and still others were slowly defiling, in processional dignity, toward their homes. Broad-hipped, lean- busted figures, in coarse g-owns and worsted ker- chiefs, toiled through the fields, carrying full milk- jugs ; brass ampliorce these latter might have been, from their classical elegance of shape. Plough- men appeared and disappeared, they and their teams rising and sinking with the varying heights and depressions of the more distant undulations. In the nearer cottages the voices of children would 18 THREE NORMANDY INNS. occasionally fill the air witli a loud clamor of sjieech ; then our steed's bell-collar would jingle, and for the children's cries, a bird-throat, high above, from the heights of a tall pine would pour forth, as if in uncontrollable ecstasy, its rapture into the stillness of this radiant Normandy garden. The song appeared to be heard by other ears than ours. We were certain the dull-brained sheep were greatly affected by the strains of that gen- erous-organed songster — they were so very still under the pink apple boughs. The cows are al- ways good listeners ; and now, relieved of their milk, they lifted eyes swimming with appreciative content above the grasses of their pasture. Two old peasants heard the very last of the cris^D trills, before the concert ended ; they were leaning forth from the narrow window-ledges of a straw-roofed cottage ; the music gave to their blinking old eyes the same dreamy look we had read in the ruminat- ing cattle orbs. For an aeronaut on his way to bed, I should have felt, had I been in that black- bird's plumed corselet, that I had had a gratify- ingly full house. Meanwhile, toward the west, a vast marine picture, like a panorama on wheels, was accom- panying us all the way. Sometimes at our feet, beneath the seamy fissures of a hillside, or far re- moved by sweep of meadow, lay the fluctuant mass we call the sea. It was all a glassy yellow surface now ; into the liquid mirror the polychrome sails sent down long lines of color. The sun had sunk beyond the Havre hills, but the flame of his man- tle still swept the sky. And into this twilight A VILLAGE STKEET— VILLEKVILLE. THREE NORMANDY INNS. 19 there crept up from the earth a subtle, delicious scent and smell — the smell and perfume of spring — of the ardent, vigorous, uns^Dent Normandy spring-. Suddenly a belfry grew out of the g^rain-fields. "Nous ro;V/— here's Yillerville ! " cried lustity into the twilight our coachman's thick peasant voice. With the butt-end of his whip he pointed toward the hill that the belfry crowned. Below the little hamlet church lay the village. A high, steep street plunged recklessly downward toward the cliff; we as recklesslj^ were following" it. The snapping of our driver's whip had brought every inhabitant of the street upon the narrow side- walks. A few old women and babies hung forth from the windows, but the houses were so low, that even this portion of the population, ham- pered somewhat bj^ distance and comparative iso- lation, had been enabled to join in the chorus of voices that filled the street. Our progress down the steep, crowded street was marked by a pomp and circumstance which commonly attend only a royal entrance into a town ; all of the inhabitants, to the last man and infant, apparently, were as- sembled to assist at the ceremonial of our entry. A chorus of comments arose from the shadowy groups filling the low doorways and the window casements. " Tiens — it begins to arrive — the season ! " " Two ladies— alone — like that ! " "Dame ! Anglaises, Americaines — they go round the world thus, a deux ! " " And why not, if they are young and can pay ? " ^0 THREE NORMANDY INNS. " Ball ! old or poor, it's all one — they're never still, those English ! " A chorus of croakiusr laughter rattled down the street along- with the rolling- of our carriage-wheels. Above, the great arch of sky had shrunk, all at once, into a narrow scollop ; with the fields and meadows the g-low of twilight had been left behind. We seemed to be pressing our way against a great curtain, the curtain made by the rich dusk that filled the narrow thoroughfare. Through the darkness the sinuous street and rickety houses wavered in outline, as the bent shapes of the aged totter across dimly-lit interiors. A fisherman's bare legs, lit by some dimly illumined interior ; a line of nets in the little yards : here and there a white kerchief or cotton cap, dazzling in Avhite- ness, thrown out against the black facades, were spots of light here and there. There was a glimpse of the village at its supper — in low-raftered inter- iors a group of blouses and women in fishermen's rig were gathered about narrow tables, the coarse- featured faces and the seamed foreheads lit up by the feeble flame of candles that ended in long, thin lines of smoke. Ohe — 3Iere 3Iouchard ! — des voyageurs ! " cried forth our coachman into the darkness. He had drawn up before a low, brightly-lit interior. In response to the call a figure appeared on the threshold of the open door. The figure stood there for a long instant, rubbing its hands, as it peered out into the dusk of the night to take a good look at us. The brown head was cocked on one side thoughtfully ; it was an attitude that ex- TBHEE NORMANDY iNNS. 21 pressed, witli astonisliiiigly clear emphasis, an unmistakable professional conception of hospital- ity. It was the air and manner, in a word, of one who had long since trimmed the measurement of its graciousness to the price paid for the article. " Ces dames wished rooms, they desired lodgings and board— ces dames were alone?" The voice finally asked, with reticent dignity. " From Havre— from Trouville, par 2^' tit bateau ! " called out lustily our driver, as if to furnish us, gratis, with a passport to the landlady's not too effusive cordiality. What secret spell of magic may have lain hid- den in our friendly coachman's announcement we never knew. But the " p'tit bateau " worked mag- ically. The figure of Mere Mouchard materialized at once into such zeal, such effusion, such a zest of welcome, that we, our bags, and our coachman were on the instant toiling up a pair of spiral wooden stairs. There was quite a little crowd to fill the all-too-narrow landing at the top of the steep steps, a crowd that ended in a long line of waiters and serving-maids, each grasping a remnant^ of luggage. Our hostess, meanwhile, was fumbling at a door-lock— an obstinate door that refused to be wrenched open. " Augustine— run— I've taken the wrong key. Cows, mon enfant, it is no farther away than the kitchen." The long line pressed itself against the low walls. Augustine, a blond - haired, neatly -gar- mented shape, sped down the rickety stairs with the step of youth and a dancer; for only the nimble 22 THREE NORMANDY INNS. ankles of one accomplished in waltzing could liave tripped as dexterously downward as did Augus- tine. " How she lags ! what an idiot of a child ! " fumed Mere Mouchard as she jaeered down into the round blackness about which the curving staircase closed like an embrace. " One must have patience, it appears, with people made like that. Ah, tiens, here she comes. How could you keep ces dames waiting like this ? It is shameful, shameful ! " cried the woman, as she half shook the panting girl, in anger. " If ces dames will enter," — her voice changing at once to a caressing fal- setto, as the door flew open, opened by Augustine's trembling fingers — " they will find their rooms in readiness." The rooms were as bare as a soldier's barrack, but they were spotlessly clean. There was the pale flicker of a sickly candle to illumine the shadowy recesses of the curtained beds and the dark little dressing-rooms. A few moments later we wound our way down- ward, spirally, to find ourselves seated at a round table in a cosy, compact dining-room. Directly opposite, across the corridor, was the kitchen, from which issued a delightful combination of vinous, aromatic odors. The light of a strong, bright lamp made it as brilliant as a ball-room ; it was a ball-room which for decoration had rows of shining brass and copper kettles — each as bur- nished as a jewel — a mass of sunny porcelain, and for carpet the satin of a wooden floor. There was much bustling to and fro. Shapes were constantly THREE NORMANDY INNS. '23 passing and repassing across the lighted interior. The Mere's broad-hipped ligure was an omniscient presence : it hovered at one instant over a steam- ing saucepan, and the next was lifting a full milk- jug or opening a wine-bottle. Above the clatter of the dishes and the stirring of spoons arose the thick Normandy voices, deep alto tones, speaking in strange jargon of speech — a world of ^xdois re- moved from our duller comprehension. It was made somewhat too plain in this country, we re- flected, that a man's stomach is of far more impor- tance than the rest of his body. The kitchen yonder was by far the most comfortable, the warm- est, and altogether the i^rettiest room in the whole house. Augustine crossed the narrow entry just then with a smoking pot of soup. She was followed, later, by Mere Mouchard, who bore a sole au vin hlanc, a bottle of white Burgundy, and a super- naturally ethereal souffle. And an hour after, even the curtainless, carpetless bed-chambers above were powerless to affect the luxurious character of our dreams. CHAPTER m. FKOM AN INN WH'^DOW. One travels a long dis- tance, sometimes, to make the astonishing- discovery that pleasure comes with the doing- of very simple things. We had come from over the seas to find the act of leaning on a window case- ment as exciting as it was satisfying. It is true that from our two inn windows there was a de- lightful variety of nature and of human nature to look out upon. From the windows overlooking the garden there was only the horizon to bound infinity. The Atlan- tic, beginning with the beach at our feet, stopped at nothing till it met the sky. The sea, literally, was at our door ; it and the Seine were next-door neighbors. Each hour of the day these neighbors presented a different face, were arrayed in totally different raiment, were grave or gay, glowing with color or shrouded in mists, according to the mood and temper of the sun, the winds, and the tides. The width of the sky overhanging this space was immense ; not a scrap, apparently, was left over to cover, decently, the rest of the earth's surface — 3 THREE NORMANDY INNS. 25 of that one was quite certain in looking- at this vast inverted cup overflowiu"- with ether. What there was of land was a very sketchy performance. Op- posite ran the red line of the Havre headlands. Following- the river, inland, there was a pretence of shore, just sufficiently outlined, like a youth's beard, to g-ive substance to one's belief in its future growth and development. Beneath these windows the water, hemmed in by this edge of shore, pant- ed, like a child at play ; its sighs, liquid, lisping-, were irresistible ; one found oneself listening for the sound of them as if they had issued from a human throat. The humming- of the bees in the g-arden, the cry of a fisherman calling across the water, the shout of the children below on the beach, or, at twilight, the chorussiug- birds, carol- ling- at full concert pitch ; this, at most, was all the sound and fury the sea-beach yielded. The windows opening on the villag-e street let in a noise as tumultuous as the sea was silent. The hubbub of a perpetual babble, all the louder for being- compressed within narrow space, was always to be heard; it ceased only when the vil- lag-e slept. There was an incessant clicking ac- companiment to this noisy street life; a music played from early daAvn to dusk over the pave- ment's rough cobbles — the click clack, click clack of the countless wooden sabots. Part of this clamor in the streets was due to the fact that the village, as a villag-e, appeared to be doing- a tremendous business with the sea. Men and women were perpetually going- to and coming- from the beach. Fishermen, sailors. 26 THREE NORMANDY INNS. women bearing- nets, oars, masts, and sails ; children bending- beneath the weight of baskets filled with kicking fish; wheelbarrows stocked high with sea-food and warm clothing ; all this commerce with the sea made the life in these streets a more animated performance than is com- monly seen in French villages. In time, the j)rovincial mania began to work in our veins. To watch our neighbors, to keep an eye on this life — this became, after a few days, the chief occupation of our waking hours. The windows of our rooms fronting- on the street were peculiarly well adapted for this un- mannerly occupation. By merely opening- the blinds, we could keep an eye on the entire villag-e. Not a cat could cross the street without undergo- ing inspection. Augustine, for example, who, once having turned her back on the inn windows, believed herself entirely cut off from observation, was perilously exposed to our mercy. We knew all the secrets of her thieving habits ; we could count, to a second, the time she stole from the Mere, her employer, to squander in smiles and dimples at the corner creamery. There a tall Norman rained admiration upon her through wide blue e3^es, as he patted, caressingly, the pots of blond butter, just the color of her hair, before laying them, later, tenderly in her open palm. Soon, as our acquaintance with our neighbors deepened into something like intimacy, we came to know their habits of mind as we did their facial peculiarities; certain of their actions made an THREE NORMANDY INNS. 27 event in our day. It became a serious matter of conjecture as to whether Madame de Tours, the social swell of the town, would or would not offer up her prayer to Deity, accompanied by Friponne, her black poodle. If Friponne issued forth from the narrow door, in company with her austere mis- tress, the shining black silk gown, we knew, would not decorate the angular frame of this aristocratic provincial ; a sober beige was best fitted to resist the dashes made by Friponne's sharply-trimmed nails. It was for this, to don a silk gown in full sight of her neighbors ; to set up as companion a dog of the highest fashion, the very purest of canicJies, that twenty years of patient nursing a paralytic husband — who died all too slowly— had been counted as nothing ! Once we were summoned to our outlook by the vigorous beating of a drum. Madame Mouchard and Augustine were already at their own post of observation — the open inn door. The rest of the village was in full attendance, for it was not every day in the week that the "tambour," the town- crier, had business enough to render his appear- ance, in his official capacity, necessary ; as a mere townsman he was to be seen any hour of the day, as drunk as a lord, at the sign of " L'Ami Fidele." His voice, as it rolled out the words of his cry, was as staccato in pitch as any organ can be whose practice is largely confined to unceasing calls for potations. To the listening crowd, the thick voice was shouting : " Madame Tricot — a la messe — dimanche — a — perdu line broche — or et perles — avco clieveux — Ma- 28 THREE N0R:MANDY INNS. dame 3Ierle a perdu — sur la plage — un panier avec — un cJiaf noir " We ourselves, to our astonishment, were drum- med the very next morning-. Augustine had made the discovery of a missing shoukler-cape ; she had taken it upon herself to call in the drum- mer. So g-reat was the attendance of villagers, even the abstractors of the lost garment must, we were certain, be among the crowd assembled to hear our names shouted out on the still air. We were greatly affected by the publicity of the occa- sion ; but the village heard the announcement, both of our names and of our loss, with the phlegm of indifference. " Vingf francs pour avoh^ tambour- ine mademoiselle ! " This was an item which a week later, in madame's little bill, was not con- fronted with indifference. " It gives one the feeling of having- had relations with a wandering- circus," remarked the young- philosopher at my side. "But it is really a great convenience, that system," she continued ; " I'm always mislaying- things — and through the drummer there's a whole village as aid to find a lost article. I shall, doubt- less, always have that, now, in my bills ! " And Charm, with an air of serene confidence in the vil- lage, adjusted her restored shoulder-cape. Down below, in our neighbor's garden — the one adjoining our own and facing the sea — a new and old world of fashion in capes and other g-arments were a-flutter in the breeze, morning after morn- ing. Who and what was this neighbor, that he should have so curious and eccentric a taste in THREE NORMANDY INNS. 29 clothes ? No woman was to be seen in the g'arden- paths ; a man, in a butler's apron and a silk skull- cap, came and went, his arms piled high with g-owns and scarves, and all manner of strange odds and ends. Each morning some new assortment of garments met our wondering eyes. Sometimes it was a collection of Empire embroidered costumes that were hung out on the line ; faded fleur-de-lis, sprigs of dainty lilies and roses, gold-embossed Empire coats, strewn thick with seed-pearls on satins softened by time into melting shades. When next we looked the court of Napoleon had van- ished, and the Bourbon i^eriod was, literally, in full swing. A frou-frou of laces, coats with deep skirts, and beribboned trousers would be fluttering airily in the soft May air. Once, in fine contrast to these courtly splendors, was a wondrous assort- ment of flannel petticoats. They were of every hue — red, yellow, brown, pink, patched, darned, wide-skirted, plaited, ruffled — they appeared to represent the taste and requirement of every cli- mate and country, if one could judge by the thickness of some and the gossamer tissues of others ; but even the smartest were obvioush', un- mistakably, effrontedly, flannel petticoats. It was a mystery that greatly intrigued us. One morning the mystery was solved. A whiff of to- bacco from an upper window came along with a puff of wind. It was a heated whiff, in spite of the cooling breeze. It was from a pipe, a short, black pipe, owned by some one in the Mansard window next door. There was the round disk of a dark-blue beret di'ooping over the pipe. " Good — " so THREE NORMANDY INNS. I said to myself—" I shall see now— at last— this maniac with a taste for darned petticoats ! " The pipe smoked peacefully, steadily on. The beret was motionless. Betweeen the pipe and the cap was a man's profile ; it was too much in shadow to be clearly defined. The next instant the man's face was in full sun- light. The face turned toward me— with the quick instinct of knowing itself watched — and then — "Pas — jyossible / " " You— here ! " " Been here a year — but you, when did you ar- rive ? What luck ! ^Tiat luck ! " It was John Eenard, the artist ; after the first salutations question followed question. " Are you alone ? " " No." " Is she — young ? " "Jes." " Pretty ? " "Judge for yourself — that is she — in the garden yonder." The beret dipped itself perilously out into the sky — to take a full view. " Hem — I'll come in at once." It was as a trio that the conversation was con- tinued later, in the garden. But Kenard was still chief questioner. " Have you been out on the mussel-beds ? " "Not yet." " We'll go this afternoon — Have you been to Honfleur ? Not yet ?— We'll go to-morrow. The tide will be in to-day about four — I'll call for you THREE NORMANDY INNS. 31 — wear heavy boots and old clothes. It's jolly dirty. Where do you breakfast ? " The breakfast was eaten^ as a trio, at our inn, an hour later. It was so warm a day, it was served under one of the arbors. Augustine was feeding- and caressing the doves as we entered the inn garden. At sight of Kenard she dropped a quiet courtesy, smiles and roses struggling for a su- premacy on her round peasant face. She let the doves loose at once, saying: " Allez, allez," as if they quite understood that with Monsieur Ee- nard's advent their hour of success was at an end. Why does a man's presence always seem to com- municate such surprising animation to a woman —to any woman % Why does his appearance, for instance, suddenly, miraculously stiffen the sauces, lure from the cellar bottles incrusted with the gray of thick cobwebs, give an added drop of the lemon to the mayonnaise, and make an omelette to swim in a sea of butter? All these added touches to our commonly admirable breakfast were conspicuous that day — it was a breakfast for a prince and a gourmet. " The Mere can cook — when she gives her mind to it," was Eenard's meagre masculine comment, as the last morsel of the golden omelette disap- peared behind his mustache. It was a gay little breakfast, with the circling above of the birds and the doves. There are dull- er forms of pleasure than to eat a repast in the company of an artist. I know not why it is, but it has always seemed to me that the man who lives only to copy life appears to get far more out of it 32 THREE NORMANDY INNS. than those who make a point of seeing nothing in it save themselves. Renard, meanwhile, was taking" pains to assure us that in less than a month the Villerville beaches would be crowded ; only the artists of the brushes were here now; the artists of high life would scarcely be found deserting the Avenue des Aca- cias before June. " French people are always coming to the sea- shore, you know — or trying to come. It's a part of their emotional religion to worship the sea. ' La mer ! la mer ! ' they cry, with eyes all whites ; then they go into little swoons of rapture — I can see them now, attitudinizing in salons and at tables -d'hote ! " To which comment we could find no more original rejoinder than our laughter. It was a day when laughter was good ; it put one in closer relations with the universal smiling. There are certain days when nature seems to laugh aloud ; in this hour of noon the entire universe, all we could see of it, was on a broad grin. Every- thing moved, or danced, or sang ; the leaves were each alive, trembling, quivering, shaking ; the in- sect hum was like a Wagnerian chorus, deafening to the ear ; there was a brisk, light breeze stirring — a breeze that moved the higher branches of the trees as if it had been an arm ; that rippled the grass : that tossed the wavelets of the sea into such foam that they seemed over-running with laughter ; and such was still its unspent energy that it sent the Seine with a bound up through its shores, its waters clanging like a sheet of mail armor worn by some lusty warrior. We were THREE NORMANDY INNS. 33 walking in the narrow lane that edged the cliff ; it was a lane that was guarded with a sentinel row of osiers, syringas, and laburnums. This was the guard of the cliffs. On the other side was the high garden wall, over which we caught dissolv- ing views of dormer-windows, of gabled roofs, vine-clad walls, and a maze of peach and pear blossoms. This Avas not precisely the kind of lane through which one hurried. One needed neither to be sixteen nor even in love to find it a delectable path, very agreeable to the eye, very suggestive to the imaginative faculty, exceedingly satisfactory to the most fastidious of all the senses, to that aristocrat of all the five, the sense of smell. Like all entirely perfect experiences in life, the lane ended almost as soon as it began ; it ended in a steep pair of steps that dropped, precipitously, on the pebbles of the beach. For some reason best kno"OTi to the day and the view, we all, with one accord, proceeded to seat ourselves on the topmost step of this stairway. "We were waiting for the tide to fall, to go out to the mussel-bed. Meanwhile the prospect to be seen from this improvised seat was one made to be looked at. There is a certain innate compelling quality in all great beauty. When nature or woman presents a really grandiose appearance, they are singularly reposeful, if you notice ; they have the calm which comes with a consciousness of splendor. It is only prettiness which is tor- mented with the itching for display ; and there- fore this prospect, which rolled itself out beneath our feet, curling in a half moon of beach, broaden- 34 THREE NORMANDY INNS. ing into meadows that dropped to the river edge, lifting its beauty upward till the hills met the sky, and the river was lost in the clasp of the shore — this aspect of nature, in this moment of beauty, was as untroubled as if Chateaubriand had not found her a lover, and had flattered man by per- suading him that " La Yoix de I'univers, c'est mon intelligence." CHAPTER IV. OUT ON A MUSSEL-BED. That same afternoon we were out on the mussel-bed. The tide was at its lowest. Before us, for an acre or more, there lay a wide, wet, stretch of brown mud. Near the beach was a strip of yellow sand ; here ; ^ and there it had contracted . ' into narrow ridg'es, elsewhere it had expanded into scroll-like patterns. The bed of mud and slime ran out from this yellow sand strip— a surface diversified by puddles of muddy water, by pools, clear, ribbed with wavelets, and by little heaps of stones covered with lichens. The surface of the bed, whether pools or puddles, or rock-heaps, or sea-weeds massed, was covered by thousands and thousands of black, lozenge-shaped bivalves. These bivalves were the mussels. Over this bed of shells and slime there moved and toiled a whole villageful of old women. Where the sea met the edges of the mud-flat the throng of women was thickest. The line of the ever-receding shore was marked by the shapes of countless bent figures. The heads of these stooping women were on a level 36 THREE NORMANDY INNS. with their feet, not one stood upright. All that the eye could seize for outline was the dome made by the bent hips, and the backs that closed against the knees as a blade is clasped into a knife handle. The oblong- masses that were lifted now and then, from the level of the sabots, resolved themselves into the outlines of women's heads and women's faces. These heads were tied up in cotton ker- chiefs or in cotton nightcaps ; these being white, together with the long, thick, aprons also white, were in startling contrast to the blue of the sky and to the changing sea-tones. Between these women and the incoming tide, twice daily, was fought a persistent, unrelenting duel. It was a duel, on the part of the fish-wives, against time, against the fate of the tides, against the blind forces of nature. For this combat the women were armed to the teeth, clad as they were in their skeleton muscular leanness; helmeted with their heads of iron ; visored in the bronze of their skin and in wrinkles that laughed at the wind. In these sinewy, toughened bodies there was a grim strength that appeared to know neither ache nor fatigue nor satiety. High, clear, strong, came their voices. The tones were the tones that come from deep chests, and with a prolonged, sustained capacity for en- during the toil of men. But the high-pitched laughter proved them women, as did their loud and unceasing gossip. The battle of the voices rose above the swash of the waves, above, also, another sound, as incessant as the women's chatter and the swish of the water as it hissed along the THREE NORMANDY INNS. 37 mud-flat's edges. This was the swift, sharp, saw- like cutting' among the stones and the slime, the scrape, scrape of the hundred of knives into the moist earth. This ceaseless scraping, lunging, digging, made a new world of sound — strange, sin- ister, uncanny. It was neither of the sea nor yet of the land — it was a noise that seemed insepar- able from this tongue of mud, that also appeared to be neither of the heavens above nor of the earth, from the bowels out of which it had sprung. The mussels cling to their slime with extraordi- nary tenacity ; only an expert, who knows the ex- act point of attachment between the hard shell and its soil, can remove a mussel with dexterity. These women, as they dipped their knives into the thick mud, swept the diminutive black bivalve with a trenchant movement, as a Moor might cleave a human head with one turn of his moon-shaped sword. Into the bronzed, v/rinkled old hands the mussels then were slipped as if they had been so many dainty sweets. New and pungent smells were abroad on this strip of slime. Sea smells, strong and salty ; smells of the moist and damp soil, the bitter-sweet of wetted weeds, the aromatic flavor that shell-life yields, and the smells also of rotten and decaying fish — all these were inextricably blended in the air, that was of the keenness of a frost-blight for freshness, and yet was warm with the softness of a June sun. Meanwhile the voices of the women were near- ing. Some of the bent heads were lifted as we ap- proached. Here and there a coif, or cotton cap, 38 THREE NOEMANDT INNS. nodded, and the slit of a smile would gape be- tween the nose and the meeting chin. A high good humor appeared to reign among the groups ; a carnival of merriment laughed itself out in coarse, cracked laughter ; loud was the play of the jests, hoarse and guttural the gibes that were abroad on the still air, from old mouths that uttered strong, deep notes. "Why should they all be old?" we queried. We were near enough to see the women face to face now, since we were far out along the outer edges of the bed ; we were so near the sea that the tide was beginning to wash us back, along with the fringe of the diggers. " They're not — they only look old," replied Ke- nard, stopping a moment to sketch in a group di- rectly in front. " This life makes old women of them in no time. How old, for instance, should you think that girl was, over there ? " The girl whom he designated was the only fig- ure of youth we had seen on the bed. She was working alone and remote from the others. She wore no coif. Her masses of red, wavy hair shaded a face already deeply seamed with lines of pre- mature age. A moment later she passed close to us. She was bent almost double beneath a huge, reeking basket, heaped with its pile of wet mus- sels. She was carrying it to a distant pool. Once beside the pool, with swift, dexterous movement the heavy basket was slipped from the bent back, the load of mussels falling in a shower into the miniature lake. The next instant she was stamping on the heap, to plunge them with her sabot still THREE NORMANDY INNS. 39 further into the pool. She was washing- her load. Soon she shouldered the basket again, filling- it with the cleansed mussels. A moment later she joined the long-, toiling- line of women that were perpetually forming and reforming on their way to the carts. These latter were drawn up near the beach, their contents guarded by boys and old men, who received the loads the women had dug-, dragging the whole, later, up the hill. " She has the Venus de Milo lines, that girl," Renard continued, critically, with his eyes on her, as she now repassed us. The figure was drawn up at its full height. It had in truth a noble dig-- nity of outline. There was a Spartan vig-or and severity in the lean, uncorseted shape, with the bust thrown out against the sky — the bust of a young warrior rather than a woman. There was a hardy, masculine freedom in the pliable motion of her straight back, a ripple with muscles that played easily beneath the close bodice, in her arms, and her finely turned ankles and legs, that were bared below the knee. The very simplicity of her costume helped to mark the Greek severity of her figure. She wore a short skirt of some coarse hempen stuff, covered with a thick apron made of sail-cloth, her feet thrust into black sabots, while the upper part of her body was covered with an unbleached chemise, widely open at the throat. She had the Phidian breadth and the modem charm — that charm which troubles and disturbs, haunting the mind with vague, unsatisfied sug-ges- tions of something- finer than is seen, something nobler than the gross physical envelope reveals. 40 THREE NORMANDY INNS. *' I must have lier — for my Salon picture," calm ly remarked Renard, after a long- moment of scru- tiny, his eyes following the lean, stately figure in its g-rave walk across the weeds and slime. " Yes, I must have her." " Won't she be hard to g-et "? How can she be made to sit, a stiffened image of clay, after this life of freedom, this athletic strugg"le out here — with these winds and tides ? " One of us, at least, was stirred at Renard's calm assumption — the assumption so common to artists, who, when they see a good thing at once count on its possessorship, as if the whole world, indeed, were eternally sitting-, agape with impatience, awaiting the advent of some painter to sketch in its portrait. " Oh, it'll be easy enough. She makes two francs a day with her six basketfuls. I'll offer her three, and she'll drop like a shot." " I'll make it a red picture," he continued, dip- ping his brushes into a little case of paints he held on his thumb ; " the mussel-bed a reddish violet, the sky red in the horizon, and the girl in the foreground, with that torrent of hair as the high light. I've been hunting for that hair all over Europe." And he beg-an sketching her in at once. " Boniour, mere, how goes it ? " He nodded as he sketched at a wrinkled, bent figure, who was smiling out at him from beneath her load of mus- sels. " Pas Trial — e vous, 3I'sieur Renard ? " " All right — and the mortgage, how goes that ? " THREE NORMANDY INNS. 41 " Pas si mal — it'll be paid off next year," " WTio is she ? One of your models ? " " Yes, last year's : she was my belle — the belle of the mussel-bed for me, a year ago. Now there's a lesson in patience for you. She's sixty-five, if she's a minute ; she's been working- here, on this mussel-bed, for five years, to pay the mortgage off her farm ; when that is done, her daughter Augus- tine can marry; Augustine's dot is the farm." " Augustine — at our inn ■? " " The very same." "And the blonde — the handsome man at the creamery, he is the future ? " " I'm sorry to hear such things of Augustine," smiled Renard, as he worked; "she must be in- dulging in an entr'acte. No, the gentleman of Augustine's — well, perhaps not of her affections, but of her mother's choice, is a peasant who works the farm ; the creamery is only an incidental di- version. Again, I'm sorry to hear such sad things of Augustine " " Horrors ! " " Exactly. That's the way it's done — over here. Will you join me — over there ? " Renard blushed a little. " I mean I wish to follow that girl — she's going to dig out yonder. Will you come ? " Meanwhile the light was changing, and so was the tide. The women were coming inward, washed up to the shore along with the grasses and sea- weeds. A band of diggers suddenly started, with full basket loads, toward a fishing boat that had dropped anchor close in to the shore; it was a Honfleur craft, come to buy mussels for the Paris 42 THREE NORMANBT INNS. market. The women trudged througli the water, np to their waists ; they clustered about the boats like so many laden beasts. But their shrill bar- gaining proved them women. Meanwhile that gentle hissing along the level stretch of brown mud was the tide. It was push- ing the women upward, as if it had been a hand — the hand of a relentless fate — instead of a little, liquid kiss. The sun, as it dipped, made a glory of splendor out of this commonplace bank. It soaked the mud in gold ; it was in a royal mood, throwing its lar- gess with reckless abundance to this poor of earth — to the slime and the mud. The long, yellow, lichen leaves massed on the rocks were dyed as if lying in a yellow bath. The sands were richly colored ; the ridges were brown in the shadows and burnished at the tops. In the distance the sea-weeds were black, sable furs, covering the vel- vet robes of earth. The sea out beyond was as rosy as a babe, and the sails were dazzlingly white as they floated past, between the sky and the dis- tant purple line of the horizon. Meanwhile the tide is coming in. The procession of the women toward the carts grows in numbers. The thick sabots plunge into the mud, the water squirts out of the wooden shoes as the strong heels press into them. The straw, the universal stocking of these women-diggers, is reeking with dirt. Volumes of slush are splashed on the bared skinny ankles, on the wet skirts, wet to the waists, and on the coarse sail-cloth aprons tied beneath the hanging bosoms. The women THREE NORMANDY INNS. 43 are all drenched now in a bath of filth. The baskets are reeking- with filth also, they rain showers of dirt along- the bent backs. A long line of the bent figures has formed on their way to the carts. There is, however, a thick fringe of dig-g-ers left who still dispute their rights with the sea. But the tide is pushing them inward, upward. And all the while the light is g-etting- more and more golden, shimmery, radiant. Under this light, beneath this golden mantel of color, these creat- ures appear still more terrible. As they bend over, their faces tirelessly held downward on a level with their hands, they seem but gnomes; surely they are huge, undeveloped embrj^os of women, with neither head nor trunk. For this light is pitiless. It makes them even more a part of this earth, out of which they seem to have sprung, a strange amorphous growth. The bronzed skins are dyed in the gold as if to match with the hue of the mud ; the wet skirts are shreds, gray and brown tatters, not so good in text- ure as the lichens, and the ragged jerseys seem only bits of the more distant weeds woven into tissues to hide mercifully the lean, sinewy backs. The tide is almost in. In the shallows the sunset is fading. Here and there are brilliant little pools, each pool a mirror, and each mirror reflects a different picture. Here is a second sky — faintly blue, with a trailing saf- fron scarf of cloud ; there, the inverted silhouettes of two fish-wives are conical shapes, their coifs and wet skirts startlingly distinct in tones ; bej'ond, sails a fantastic fleet, with polychrome sails, each 44 THREE NORMANDY INNS. spar, masthead, and wrinkled sail as sharply out- lined as if chiselled in relief. Presently these min- iature pictures fade as the light fades. Blacker grows the mud, and there is less and less of it ; the silhouetted shapes of the diggers are seen no more ; they are following the carts up the steep cliffs ; even the sky loses its color and fades also. And the little pools that have been a burning orange, then a darkening violet, gay with pictured worlds, in turn pale to gray, and die into the uni- versal blackness. The tide is in. It is flowing, rich and full, crested with foam be- neath the osier hedges. We hear it break with a sudden dash and splutter against the cliff para- pets. And the mud-bank is no more. Half an hour later, from our chamber windows we looked forth through the dusk across at the mussel bed. The great mud-bank, all that black acreage of slime and sea-weed, the eager, strug- gling band of toiling fish-wives, all was gone ; it was all as if it had not been — would never be again. The water hissed along the beach ; it broke in rh3^thmic, sonorous measure against the para- pet. Surely there had never been any beds, or any mussels, or any toiling fish -wives ; or if there had, it was all a world that the sea had washed up, and then as quietly, as heedlessly, as piti- lessly had obliterated. It was the very epitome of life itself. CHAPTER V. THE TILLAGE. OuE visit to the mussel-bed, as we soon found, had been our formal introduction to the village. Henceforth ev- ery door-step held a friend ; not a coif or a blouse passed without a g-reeting". The village, as a village, lived in the open street. Yillerville had the true French genius for society ; the very houses were neighborly, crowding close upon the nan-ow sidewalk. Conversation, to be carried on from a dormer-window or from oppo- site sides of the street, had evidently been the first architectural consideration in the mind of the builders ; doors and windows must be as open and accessible as the lives of the inhabitants. The houses themselves appeared to be regarded in the light of pockets, into which the old women and fishermen plunged to drag forth a net or a knife ; also as convenient, if rude, little caverns into which the village crawled at night, to take its heavy slumber. The door-step was the drawing - room, and 46 THREE NORMANDY INNS. the open street was the club of this Villerville world. The door-way, the yard, or the bit of garden tucked in between two high walls — it was here, under the tent of sky rather than beneath the stufiy roofs, that the village lived, talked, quar- relled, bargained, worked, and more or less openly made love. To the door-step everything was brought that was portable. There was nothing, from the small boy to the brass kettle, that could not be more satisfactorily polished oflf, in full view of one's world, than by one's self, in seclusion and solitude. Justice, at least, appeared to gain by this passion for open-air ministration, if one were to judge by the frequency with which the Yillerville boy was laid across the parental knee. We were repeat- edly called upon to coincide, at the very instant of flagellation, with the verdict pronounced against the youthful offender. " S'il est assez mechant, lui ? Ah, mesdames, what do you think of one who goes forth dry, with clean sabots, that I, myself, have washed, and behold him returned, ajyres un tout p'tit quart d'heure, stinking with filth ? Bah ! it's he that will catch it when his father comes home ! " And mean- while the mother's hand descends, lest justice should cool ere night. There were other groups that crowded the door- steps; there were young mothers that sat there, with their babes clasped to the full breasts, in whose eyes was to be read the satisfied passion of recent motherhood ; there were gay clusters of A VIl.LEKVILLE FISH-WIFE. THREE NORMANDY INNS. 47 young Norman maidens, whose glances, brilliant and restless, were pregnant with all the meaning of nnspent youth. The figures of the fishermen, toiling up the street with bared legs and hairy breast, bending beneath their baskets alive with fish, stopped to have a word or two, seasoned with a laugh, with these latter groups. There were also knots of patient old men, wrecks that the sea had tossed back to earth, to rot and die there, that came out of the black little houses to rest their bones in the sun. And everywhere there were groups of old women, or of women still young, to whom the look of age had come long before its due time. The village seemed peopled with women, sexless creatures for the most part, whom toil and the life on the mussel-bed or in the field had dried and hardened into mummy shapes. Only these, the old and the useless, were left at home to rear the younger generation and to train them to take up the same heavy burden of life. The coifs of these old hags made dazzling spots of brightness against the gray of the walls and the stuccoed houses; clustered together, the high caps that nodded in unison to the chatter were in startling contrast to the bronzed faces bending over the fish-nets, and to the blue-veined, leathery hands that flew in and out of the coarse meshes with the fluent ease of long practice. With one of these old women we became friends. We had made her acquaintance at a poetic mo- ment, under romantic circumstances. We were all three watching a sunset, under a pink sky; we 48 THREE NORMANDY INNS. •were sitting far out on the grasses of the cliff. Her house was in the midst of the grasses, some little distance from the village, attached to it only as a ragged fringe might edge a garment. It was a thatched hut ; yet there were circumstances in the life of the owner which had transformed the interior into a luxurious apartment. The owner of the hut was herself hanging on the edge of life ; she was a toothless, bent, and withered old rem- nant ; but her vigor and vivacity were those of a .witch. Her hands and eyes were ceaselessly ac- tive ; she was forever busy, fingering a fish-net, or polishing her Normandy brasses, or stirring some dark liquid in an iron pot over the dim fire. At our first meeting, conversation had immedi- ately engaged itself ; it had ended, as all right talk should, in friendship. On this morning of our visit, many a gay one having preceded it, we found our friend arrayed as if for an outing. She had mounted her best coif, and tied across her shrivelled old breast was a vivid purple silk ker- chief. " Tiens, mes enfants, soyez les hienvenues" was her gay greeting, seasoned with a high cackling laugh, as she waved us to two rickety chairs. "No, I'm not going out, not yet; there is plenty of time, plenty of time. It is you who are good, si aimahles, to come out here to see me. And tired, too, liein, with the long walk ? Tiens, I had nearly forgotten ; there's a bottle of wine open below — you must take a glass." She never forgot. The bottle of wine had al- ways just been opened ; the cork was always also THREE NORMANDY INNS. 49 miraculousl}' rebellious for a cork that had been previously iDulled. Althoug-li our ancient friend was a peasant, her cellar was the cellar of a gour- met. Wonderful old wines were hers ! Port, Bordeaux, white wines, of vintages to make the heart warm ; each was produced in turn, a differ- ent vintage and wine on each one of our visits, but no champagne. This was no wine for women — for the right women. Champagne was a bad, fast wine, for fast, disreputable people. " G'est mi vrai poison, qui vous infede," she had declared again and again, and when she saw her daughter drink- ing it, it made her shudder ; she confessed to hav- ing a moment of doubt ; had Paris, indeed, really brought her child no harm ? Then the old mere would shrug her bent shoulders and rub her hands, and for a moment she would be lost in thought. Presently the cracked old laugh would peal forth again, and, as she threw back her head, she would shake it as if to disj)el some dark vision. To-day she had dropped, almost as soon as we entered, into a nan-ow trap-door, descending a flight of stone steps. We could hear a clicking of bottles and a rustling of straw: and then, behold, a veritable fairy issuing from the bowels of the earth, with flushes of red suffusing the ribbed, be- wi'inkled face, as the old figure straightens its crookedness to carrj^ the dust.y bottle securely, steadily, lest the cloudy settling at the bottom should be disturbed. What a merry little feast then began ! We had learned where the glasses were kept ; we had been busily scouring them while 50 THREE NORMANDY INNS. our hostess was below. Then wine and glasses, along with three chairs, were quickly iDlaced on the pine table at the door of the old house. Here, on the grass of the cliffs, we sat, sipping our wine, enjoying the sea that lay at our feet, and above, the sunlit sky. To our friend both sky and sea were familiar comi3anions ; but the fichu was a new friend. " Yes, it is very beautiful, as you say," she said, in answer to our admiring comments. " It came from Paris, from my daughter. She sent it to me ; she is always making me gifts ; she is one who remembers her old mother ! Figure to your- selves that last year, in midwinter, she sent me no less than three gowns, all wool ! What can I do with them ? C'est pour me flatter, dest sa maniere de me dire qiCilfaut vivrepour longtem2)s I Ah, la cherefoUe ! But she spoils me, the darling ! ''' This daughter had become the most mysterious of all our Villerville discoveries. Our old friend was a peasant, the child of peasant farmers. She would always remain a peasant ; and yet her daughter was a Parisian, and lived in a bonhon- niere. She was also married ; but that only served to thicken the web of mystery enshrouding her. How could a daughter of a peasant, brought up as a peasant, who had lived here, a tiller of the fields till her nineteenth year, suddenly be transformed into a woman of the Parisian world, gain the posi- tion of a banker's wife, and be dancing, as the old mere kept telling us, at balls at the Elysee ? Her mother never answered this riddle for us; and, more amazing still, neither could the village. The THREE NORMANDY INNS. 51 village would slirag its shoulders, when we ques- tioned it, with discretion, concerning- this enigma. " Ah, dame ! It was she— the old mere — who had had chances in life, to marry her daughter like that! Victorine was pretty — yes, there was no gainsaying she was pretty — but not so beautiful as all that, to entrap a banker, ten homme serieux, qui v'lt de ses rentes ! and who was generous, too, for the old mere needn't work now, since she was always receiving money." Gifts were perpetually pouring into the low rooms — wines, and Parisian delicacies, and thick garments. The tie between the two, between the mother and daughter, appeared to be as strong and their relations as complete, as if one were not clad in homespun and the other in Worth goAvns. There was no shame, that was easily seen, on either side ; each apparently was full of pride in the other ; their living apart was entirely due to the old mere's preference for a life on the cliffs, alone in the midst of all her old peasant belongings. " G'estiolus chez-soi, ici ! Victorine feels that, too. She loves the smell of the old wood, and of the peat burning there in the fireplace. When she comes down to see me, I must shut fast all the doors and windows ; she wants the whole of the smell, 2^our /aire le vrai bouquet, as she says. If she had had children— ah !— I don't say but what I might have consented ; but as it is, I love my old fire, and my view out there, and the village, best ! " At this point in the conversation, the old eyes, bright as they were, turned dim and cloudy ; the 52 THREE norm: AND T INNS. inward eye was doubtless seeing sometliing otlier than the view ; it was resting on a youthful figure, clad in Parisian draperies, and on a face rising above the draperies, that bent lovingly over the deep -throated fireplace, basking in its warmth, and revelling in its homely perfume. We were silent also, as the picture of that transfigured daughter of the house flitted across our own mental vision. " The village ? " suddenly broke in the old mere. " Dieu de Dieu ! that reminds me. I must go, my children, I must go. Loisette is waiting ; la pau- vre enfant — perhaps suffering too — how do I know ? And here am I, playing, like a lazy clout ! Did you know she had had im nini this morning ? The little angel came at dawn. That's a good sign ! And what news for Auguste ! ,He was out last night — fishing ; she was at her washing when he left her. Tiens, there they are, looking for him ! They've brought the spy-glass." The old mere shaded her eyes, as she looked out into the dazzling sunlight. We followed her fin- ger, that pointed to a projection on the cliffs. Among the grasses, grouped on top of the high- est rock, was a family i^arty. An old fish-wife was standing far out against the sky ; she also was shading her eyes. A child's round head, crowded into a white knit cap, was etched against the wide blue ; and, kneeling, holding in both hands a seaman's long glass, was a girl, sweeping the hori- zon with swift, skilful stretches of arm and hand. The sun descended in a shower of light on the old grandam's seamy face, on the red, bulging cheeks of the chubby child, and on the bent figure of the THREE NORMANDT INNS. SS g-irl, whose kuees were firmly implanted in the deep, tall ^ifrasses. Bej'ond the group there was nothing but sea and sky. "Yes," the mere went on, garrulously, as she recorked the bottle of old port, carrying table and glasses within doors. "Yes, they're looking for him. It ought to be time, now : he's due about now. There's a man for you — good — hon comme le bon Dieu. Sober, saving too— good father— in love Avith Loisette as on the wedding night— ah, mes enfanfs .'—there are few like him, or this village would be a paradise ! " She shut the door of the little cabin. And then she gave us a broad wink. The wink w^as entirely by way of explanation : it was to enlighten us as to why a certain rare bottle of port — a fresh one — was being secreted beneath her fichu. It was a wink that conveyed to us a really valuable number of facts ; chief among them being the very obvious fact that the French Government was an idiot, and a tyrant into the bargain, since it imposed stupid laws no one meant to carry out ; least of all a good Norman. "UTiat "? pay two sous octroi on a bottle of one's own wine, that one had had in one's cellar for half a lifetime ? To cheat the to^-n out of those twopence becomes, of course, the true Nor- man's chief pleasure in life. TMiat is his reputa- tion worth, as a shrewd, sharp man of business, if a little thing like cheating stops him ? It is even better fun than bargaining, to cheat thus one's own town, since nothing is to be risked, and one is so certain of success. The mere nodded to us gayly, in farewell, as 54 THREE NORMANDY INNS. we all three re-entered the town. She disap- peared all at once into a narrow door- way, her arms still clasping her old port, that lay in the folds of her shawl. On her shrewd kindly old face came a light that touched it all at once with a glow of di- vinity ; the mother in her had sprung into life with sharp, sweet suddenness ; she had caught the wail of the new-born babe through the open door. The "village itself seemed to have caught some- thing of the same glow. It was not only the splendor of the noon sun that made the faces of the worn fish-wives and the younger women softer and kindlier than common ; the groups, as we passed them, were all talking of but one thing — of this babe that had come in the night, of Auguste's absence, and of Loisette's sharp pains and her cries, that had filled the street, so that none could sleep. CHAPTEE VI. A PAGAN COBBLER. At dusk that evening- the same subject, with vari- ations, was the universal topic of the conversation- al groups. Still Auguste had not come; half the village was out watching- for him on the cliffs. The other half was crowding the streets and the door- steps. Twilight is the classic time, in all French towns and villages, for the al-fresco lounge. The cool breath of the dusk is fresh, then, and restful ; after the heat and sweat of the long noon the air, as it touches brow and lip, has the charm of a caress. So the door- ways and streets were always crowded at this hour ; groups moved, separated, formed and re-formed, and lingered to exchange their bud^ get of gossip, to call out their " Boniie nuit," the girls to clasp hands, looking longingly over their shoulders at the younger fishermen and farmers ; the latter to nod, carelessly, gayly back at them ; and then — as men will — to fling an arm about a 56 THREE NORMANDY INNS. comrade's shoulder as they, in their turn, called out into the dusk, " AUons, mon brave ; de Vahsintlie, toi ? " as the cabaret swallowed them Mp. Great and mighty were the cries and the oaths that issued from the cabaret's open doors and windows. The Villerville fisherman loved Bacchus only, second to Neptune; when he was not out casting- his net into the Channel he was drinking up his spoils. It was during the sobering process only that affairs of a purely domestic nature en- gaged his attention. Some of the streets were permeated with noxious odors, with the poison of absinthe and the fumes of cheap brandy. Noisy, reeling groups came out of the tavern doors, to shout and sing, or to fight their way homeward. One such figure was filling a narrow alley, sway- ing from right to left, with a jeering crowd at his heels. " Est-il assez ridicule, lui ? with his cap over his nose, and his knees knocking at everyone's door ? Bah ! Qa pue ! " the group of lads following him went on, shouting about the poor sot, as they pelted him with their rain of pebbles and paper bullets. "Ah — h, he will beat her, in his turn, poor soul ; she always gets it when he's full, as full as that " The voice was so close to our ears that we started. The words appeared addressed to us ; they were, in a way, since tliej^ were intended for the street, as a street, and for the benefit of the groups that filled it. The voice was gruff yet mellow ; despite its gruffness it had the ring of a latent kindliness THREE NORMANDY INNS. 57 in its deep tones. The man who owned it was seated on a level with our elbows, at a cobbler's bench. We stopped to let the crowd push on beyond us. The man had only lifted his head from his work, but involuntarily one stopped to salute the power in it. " Bonsoir, mesdames " — the head gravely bowed as the great frame of the body below the head rose from the low seat. The room within seemed to contain nothing else save this giant figure, now that it had risen and was moving toward us. The half-door was courteously opened. " Will not CCS dames give themselves the trouble of entering? The streets are not gay at this hour." We went in. A dog and a woman came forth from a smaller inner room to greet us ; of the two the dog was obviously the personage next in point of intelligence and importance to the master. The woman had a snuffed-out air, as of one whose life had died out of her years ago. She blinked at us meekly as she dropped a timid courtesy ; at a low word of command she turned a pitifully patient back on us all. There were years of obedience to orders written on its submissive curves ; and she bent it once more over her kettles ; both she and the kettles were on the bare floor. It was the poorest of all the Villerville interiors we had as yet seen ; the house was also, perhaps, the oldest in the village. It and the old church had been opposite neighbors for several centuries. The shop and the living-room were all in one ; the low window was a counter by day and a shutter by 58 THREE NORMANDY INNS. night. Within, the walls were bare as were the floors. Three chairs with sunken leather covers, and a bed with a mattress, also sunken — a hollow in a pine frame, was the equipment in furniture. The ijoverty was brutal ; it was the naked, un- abashed poverty of the middle ages, with no hint of shame or effort of concealment. The colossus whom the low roof covered was as unconscious of the barrenness of his surroundings as were his own walls. This hovel was his home; he had made us welcome with the manners of a king. Meanwhile the dog was sniffing at our skirts. After a tour of observation and inspection he wagged his tail, gave a short bark, and seated him- self by Charm. The giant's eyes twinkled. " You see, mesdames, it is a dog with a mind — he knows in an instant who are the right sort. And eloquence, also — he is one who can make speeches with his tail. A dog's tongue is in his tail, and this one wags his like an orator ! " Some one else, as well as the dog, possessed the oratorical gift. The cobbler's voice was the true speaker's voice — rich, vibrating, sonorous, with a deep note of melody in it. Pose and gestures matched with the voice ; they were flexible and picturesquely suggestive. " If you care for oratory — " Charm smiled out upon the huge but mobile face—" you are well placed. The village lies before you. You can always see the play going on, and hear the speeches — of the passers-by." The large mouth smiled back. But at Charm's first sentence the keen Norman 'eyes had fixed THREE NORMANDY INNS. 59 their twinkling- glitter on the girl's face. They seemed to be reading to the very bottom of her thought and being. The scrutiny was not relaxed as he answered. " Yes, yes, it is very amusing. One sees a little of everything here. Le monde qui passe — it makes life more diverting ; it helps to kill the time. I look out from my joerch, like a bird — a very old one, and caged " — and he shook forth a great laugh from beneath the wide leather apron. The woman, hearing the laugh, came out into the room. " E'ben — et toi — what do you want ? " T]ie giant stopped laughing long enough to turn tyrant. The woman, at the first of his growl, smiled feebly, going back with unresisting meek- ness to her knees, to her pots, and her kettles. The dog growled in imitation of his master ; ob- viously the soul of the dog* was in the AMrong- body. Meanwhile the master of the dog and the woman had forgotten both now ; he was continu- ing, in a masterful way, to enlighten us about the peculiarities of his native village. The talk had now reached the subject of the church. " Oh, yes, it is fine, very, and old; it and this old house are the oldest of all the inhabitants of this village. The church came first, though, it was built by the English, when they came over, thinking to conquer us with their Hundred Years' T\"ar. Little they knew France and Frenchmen. The church was thoroughly French, although the English did build it ; on the ground many times, 60 THREE NORMANDY INNS. but up ao^ain, only waiting' the liand of tlie builder and the restorer." Again the slim-waisted shape of the old wife ventured forth into the room. " Yes, as he says " — in a voice that was but an echo — "the church has been down many times." " Tais-toi — c'est moi qui parle" grumbled anew her husband, giving the withered face a terrific scowl. " Ohe, Old, c'est toi," the echo bleated. The thin hands meekly folded themselves across her apron. She stood quite still, as if awaiting more punish- ment. " It is our good cure who wishes to pull it down once more," her terrible husband went on, not heeding her quiet presence. " Do j'ou know our cure ? Ah, ha, he's a fine one. It's he that rules us now — he's our king — our emperor. Ugh, he's a bad one, he is." " Ah, yes, he's a bad one, he is," his wife echoed, from the side wall. " Well, and who asked you to talk ? " cried her husband, with a face as black as when the cure's name had first been mentioned. The echo shrank into the wall. " As I was telling these ladies " — he resumed here his boot work, clamping the last between his great knees — "as I was saying, we have not been fortunate in cures, we of our parish. There are cures and cures, as there are fagots and fagots — and ours is a bad lot. We've had nothing but trouble since he came to rule over us. We get poorer day by day, and he richer. There he is now, feeding his hens and his doves — look, over THREE NORMANDY INNS. 61 there — witli the ladies of his household gathered about him — his mother, his aunt, and his niece — a perfect harem. Oh, he keeps them all fat and sleek, like himself ! Bah ! " The g-runt of disgust the cobbler g-aye filled the room like a thunderclap. He was peering over his last, across the open counter, at a little house adjoining- the church g-reen, with a great hatred in his face. From one of the windows of the house there was leaning forth a group of three heads ; there was the tonsured head of a priest, round, pink-tinted, and the figures of two women, one youthful, with a long, sad-featured face, and the other ruddy and vigorous in outline. They were watching the priest as he scattered corn to the hens and geese in the garden below the window. The cobbler was still eying them fiercely, as he continued to give vent to his disgust. "Mediant homme — hd" he here whipped his thread, venomously, through the leather he was sewing. " Figure to yourselves, mesdames, that besides being wicked, our cure is a very shrewd man ; it is not for the pure good of the parish he works, not he." " Not he," the echo repeated, coming forth again from the wall. This time the whisper passed un- noticed ; her master's hatred of the cure was greater than his passion for showing his o\mi power. " Eeligion — religion is a very good way of mak- ing money, better than most, if one knows how to work the machine. The soul, it is a fine instru- ment on which to play, if one is skilful. Our 62 THREE NORMANDY INNS. cure has a grand touch on this instrument. You should see the good man take up a collection, it is better than a comedy." Here the cobbler turned actor ; he rose, scatter- ing- his utensils right and left ; he assumed a grand air and a mincing, softly tread, the tread of a priest. His flexible voice imitated admirably the rounded, unctuous, autocratic tone peculiar to the graduates of St. Sulpice. " You should hear him, when the collection does not suit him : ' Mes freres et mes soeurs, I see that le hon Dieu isn't in your minds and your hearts to-day ; you are not listening to his voice ; the Saviour is then speaking- in vain ? ' Then he prays — " the cobbler folded his hands with a great parade of re-verence, lifting his eyes as he rolled his lids heavenward hypocritically — " yes, he prays —and then he passes the plate himself ! He holds it before your very nose, there is no pushing it aside ; he would hold it there till you dropped — till Doomsday. Ah, he's a hard crust, he is! There's a tyrant for you — la monarcMe absolue — that's what he believes in. He must have this, he must have that. Now it is a new altar-cloth, or a fresh Virgin of the modern make, from Paris, with a robe of real lace ; the old one was black and faded, too black to pray to. Now it is a huissier, forsooth, that we must have, we, a parish of a few hundred souls, who know our seats in the church as well as we know our own noses. One would think a ' Suisse ' would have done ; but we are swells now — avec ce gaillard-ld, only the tiptop is good enough. So, if you grace our poor old church with your THREE NORMANDY INNS. 63 presence you will be shown to your bench by a very splendid gentleman in black, in knee-breeches, with silver chains, with a three-cornered hat, who strikes with his stick three times as he seats j^ou. Bah ! ridiculous ! " " Kidiculous ! " the woman repeated, softly. " They had the cure once, though. One day in church he announced a subscription to be taken up for restorations, from fifty centimes to — to any- thing ; he will take all you give him, avaricious that he is ! He believes in the greasing of the palm, he does. Well, think you the subscription was for restorations, mesdames 1 It was for demolition — that's what it was for — to make the church level with the ground. To do this would cost a little matter of twenty thousand francs, which would pass through his hands, you understand. Well, that staggered the parish. Our mayor — a man pas irop Jin, was terribly up- set. He went about saying the cure claimed the church as his ; he could do as he liked with it, he said, and he proposed to make it a fine modem one. All the village was weeping. The church was the oldest friend of the village, except for such as I, whom these things have turned pa- gan. Well, one of our good citizens reminds the mayor that the church, under the new laws, be- longs to the commune. The mayor tells this timidly to the cure. And the cure retorts, 'Ah, hien, at least one-half belongs to me.' And the good citizen answers — he has gone Avith the mayor to x^rop him up — ' Which half will you take ? The cemetery, doubtless, since your charge 64 THREE NORMANDY INNS. is over the souls of the parish.' Ah ! ah ! he pricked him well then ! he pricked him well ! " The low room rang- with the great shout of the cobbler's laughter. The dog barked furiously in concert. Our own laughter was drowned in the thunder of our host's loud guffaws. The poor old wife shook herself with a laugh so much too vigor- ous for her frail frame, one feared its after-effects. The after-effects were a surprise. After the first of her husband's spasms of glee the old woman spoke out, but in trembling tones no longer. " Ah, the cemetery, it is I who forgot to go there this week." Her husband stopped, the laugh dying on his lip as he turned to her. ''Ah, ma bonne, how came that ? You forgot ? " His own tones trembled at the last word. " Yes, you had the cramps ag-aiu, you remember, and there was no money left for the bouquet." " Yes, I remember," and the g-reat chest heaved a deep sigh. " You have children — you have lost someone % " " Helas ! no living- children, mademoiselle. No, no — one daughter we had, but she died twenty years ago. She lies over there — where we can see her. She would have been thirty-eight years now — the fourteenth of this very month ! " "Yes, this very month." Then the old woman, for the first time, left her refuge along the wall ; she crept softly, quietly near to her husband to put her withered hand in his. His larg-e palm closed over it. Both of the old faces turned toward the cemetery ; and in the old THREE NORMANDT INNS. 65 eyes a film gathered, as they looked toward all that was left of the hope that was buried away from them. We left them thus, hand in hand, with many promises to renew the acquaintance. The village was no longer abroad in the streets. During our talk in the shop the night had fallen ; it had cast its shadow, as trees cast theirs, in a long, slow slant. Lights were trembling in the dim interiors ; the shrill cries of the children were stilled ; only a muffled murmur came through the open doors and windows. The villagers were pat- tering across the rough floors, talking, as their sa- bots clattered heavily over the wooden surface, as they washed the dishes, as they covered their fires, shoving back the tables and chairs. As we walked along, through the nearer windows came the sound of steps on the creaking old stairs, then a rustling of straw and the heavy fall of weary bodies, as the villagers flung themselves on the old oaken beds, that groaned as they received their burden. Pres- ently all was still. Only our steps resounded through the streets. The stars filled the sky ; and beneath them the waves broke along the beach. In the closely packed little streets the heavy breath- ing of the sleeping village broke also in short, quick gasps. Only we and the night were awake. CHAPTER VII. SOME NOKMAN LANDLADIES. Quite a number of changes came about with our an- nexation of an artist and his garden. Chief among these changes was the sur- prising discovery of find- ing ourselves, at the end of a week, in possession of a villa. " It's next door," Renard remarked, in the casual way peculiar to artists. "You are to have the whole house to yourselves, all but the top floor; the people who own it keep that to live in. There's a garden of the right sort, with espaliers, also rose-trees, and a tea-house ; quite the right sort of thing altogether." The unforeseen, in its way, is excellent and ad- mirable. De I'im^yrevii, surely this is the dash of seasoning — the caviare we all crave in life's some- what too- monotonous repasts. But as men have been known to admire the still-life in wifely char- acter, and then repented their choice, marrying peace only to court dissension, so we, inconti- nently deserting our humble inn chambers to take possession of a grander state, in the end found the A DEI AKTL'ltE — V ll.i.EKVll.i.E. THREE NORMANDY INNS. 67 capital of experience drained to pay for our little infidelity. The o"vniers of tlie villa Belle Etoile, our friend announced, he had found greatly depressed ; of this, their passing" mood, he had taken such advan- tage as only comes to the knowing. " They speak of themselves drearily as ' deux pauvres malheu- reux ' with this villa still on their hands, and here they are almost ' touching June,' as they put it. They also gave me to understand that only the finest flowers of the aristocracj'^ had had the honor of dwelling in this villa. Thej^ have been able, I should sa}' , more or less successfully to deflower this ' fine fleur ' of some of their gold. But they are very meek just now — they were willing to listen to reason." The " two poor unhappies " were looking sur- prisingly contented an hour later, when we went in to inspect our possessions. They received us with such suave courtesy, that I was quite certain Eenard's skill in transactions had not played its full gamut of capacity. Civility is the Frenchman's mask ; he wears it as he does his skin — as a matter of habit. But courtesy is his costume de bed ; he can only afi"ord to don his bravest attire of smiles and gracious- ness when his pocket is in holiday mood. Madame Fouchet we found in full ball-room toilet ; she was wreathed in smiles. "Would ces dames give them- selves the trouble of entering ? would they see the house or the garden first ? would they permit their trunks to be sent for ? Monsieur Fouchet, mean- while, was making a brave second to his wdfe's 68 THREE NORMANDT 1NN8. bustling- welcome ; he was rubbing his hands vig- orously, a somewhat suspicious action in a French- man, I have had occasion to notice, after the com- pletion of a bargain. Nature had cast this mild- eyed individual for the part of accompanyist in the comedy we call life; a role he sometimes varied as now, with the office of claqueur, when an uncommonly clever proof of madame's talent for business drew from him this noiseless tribute of applause. His weak, fat contralto called after us, as we followed madame's quick steps up the waxed stairway ; he would be in readiness, he said, to show us the garden, " once the chambers were vis- ited." " It wasn't a real stroke, mesdames, it was only a warning ! " was the explanation conveyed to us in loud tones, with no reserve of whispered deli- cacy, when we expressed regret at monsieur's de- tention below stairs ; a partially paralyzed leg, dragged painfully after the latter's flabby figure, being the obvious cause of this detention. The stairway had the line of beauty, describing a pretty curve before its glassy steps led us to a narrow entry ; it had also the brevity which is said to be the very soul, Vanima viva, of all true wit ; but it was quite long and straight enough to serve Madame Fouchet as a stage for a prolonged mono- logue, enlivened with much affluence of gesture. Fouchet's seizure, his illness, his convalescence, and present physical condition — a condition which appeared to be bristling with the tragedy of dan- ger, " un vrai drame d'anxiete " — was graphically conveyed to us. The horrors of the long winter THREE NORMANDY INNS. 69 also, so sad for a Parisian — " si triste i^our la Parisienne, ces hivers de province " — together with the miseries of her own home life, between this paralytic of a husband below stairs, and above, her mother, an old lady of eighty, nailed to her sofa with gout. " You may thus figure to yourselves, mesdames, what a melancholy season is the win- ter! And now, with this villa still on our hands, and the season already announcing itself, ruin stares us in the face, mesdames — ruin ! " It was a moving picture. Yet we remained strangel}^ unafiected by this tale of woe. Madame Fouchet herself, the woman, not the actress, was to blame, I think, for our imfeelingness. Some- hoAV, to connect woe, ruin, sadness, melancholy, or distress, in a word, of any kind with our landlady's opulent figure, we found a diflicult acrobatic men- tal feat. She presented to the eye outlines and features that could only be likened, in point of prosperity, to a Dutch landscape. Like certain of the mediaeval saints i^resented by the earlier de- lineators of the martyrs as burning above a slow fire, while wearing smiles of purely animal con- tent, as if in full enjoyment of the temperature, this lady's sufferings were doubtless an invisible discipline, the hair shirt which her hardened cuti- cle felt only to be a pleasurable itching. " Yoila, mesdames ! " It was with a magnificent gesture that madame opened doors and windows. The drama of her life was forgotten for the mo- ment in the conscious pride of presenting us with such a picture as her gay little house offered. Inside and out, summer and the sun were bloom- 70 THREE NORMANDY INNS. ing- and shining' with spendthrift luxuriance. The salon opened directly on the garden; it would have been difficult to determine just where one began and the domain of the other ended, with the pinks and geraniums that nodded in response to the peach and pear blossoms in the garden. A bit of faded Aubusson and a print representing Ma- dame Geoffrin's salon in full session, with a poet of the period transporting the half-moon grouped listeners about him to the point of tears, were evi- dences of the refined tastes of our landlady in the arts ; only a sentimentalist would have hung that picture in her salon. Other decorations further proved her as belonging to both worlds. The chintzes gay with garlands of roses, with which walls, beds, and chairs were covered, revealed the mundane element, the woman of decorative tastes, possessed of a hidden passion for effective back- grounds. Two or three wooden crucifixes, a jirie- dieu, and a couple of saints in plaster, went far to prove that this excellent hourgeoise had thriftily made her peace with Heaven. It was a curious mixture of the sacred and the profane. Down below, beneath the windows overlooking the sea, lay the garden. All the houses fronting the cliff had similar little gardens, giving, as the French idiom so prettily puts it, upon the sea. But compared to these others, ours was as a rose of Sharon blooming in the midst of little deserts. Renard had been entirely right about this particu- lar bit of earth attached to our villa. It was a gem of a garden. It was a French garden, and there- fore, entirely as a matter of course, it had walls. THREE NORMANDY INNS. 71 It was as cut off from the rest of the world as if it had been a prison or a fortification. The Frenchman, above all others, appears to have the true sentiment of seclusion, when the so- ciety of trees and flowers is to be enjoyed. Next to woman, nature is his fetich. True to his na- tional taste in dress, he prefers that both should be costumsd a la Parisienne ; but as poet and lover, it is his instinct to build a wall about his idol, that he may enjoy his moments of expansion un- seen and unmolested. This square of earth, for instance, was not much larger than the space cov- ered by the chamber roof above us ; and yet, with the hig-h walls towering- over the rose-stalks, it was as secluded as a monks cloister. AVe found it, in- deed, on later acquaintance, as poetic and delicate- ly sensuous a retreat as the romance-writers would wish us to believe did those media3val connoisseurs of comfort, when, with sandalled feet, they paced their own convent garden-walks. Fouchet was a broken-down shopkeeper ; but somewhere hidden within, there lurked the soul of a Maecenas; he knew how to arrange a feast— of roses. The gar- den was a bit of greensward, not much larger than a pocket-handkerchief ; but the grass had the right emerald hue, and one's feet sank into the rich turf as into the velvet of an oriental rug. Small as was the enclosure, between the espaliers and the flower-beds serpentined minute paths of glistening pebbles. Nothing which belonged to a garden had been forgotten, not even a pine from the tropics, and a bench under the pine that was just large enough for two This lat- 72 THREE NORMANDT INNS. ter was an ideal little spot in which to bring a friend or a book. One could sit there and gorge one's self with sweets ; a dance was perpetually going on — the gold-and-purple butterflies flutter- ing gayly from morning till night ; and the bees freighted the air with their buzzing. If one tired of perfumes and dancing, there was always music to be enjoyed, from a full orchestra. The sea, just the other side of the wall of osiers, was always in voice, whether sighing or shouting. The larks and blackbirds had a predilection for this nest of color, announcing their preference loudly in a combat of trills. And once or twice, we were quite certain, a nightingale with Patti notes had been trying its liquid scales in the dark. It was in this garden that our acquaintance with our landlord deepened into something like friend- ship. Monsieur Fouchet was always to be found there, tying up the rose-trees, or mending the paths, or shearing the bit of turf. '^Monjardin, c'est un peu moi, vous savez — it is my pride and my consolation." At the latter word, Fouchet was certain to sigh. Then we fell to wondering just what grief had befallen this amiable person which required Hora- tian consolation. Horace had need of rose-leaves to embalm his disappointments, for had he not cooled his passions by plunging into the bath of literature ? Besides, Horace was bitten by the modern rabies : he was as restless as an American. AVlien at Rome was he not always sighing for his Sabine farm, and when at the farm always regret- ting Rome % But this harmless, innocent-eyed, THREE NORMANDY INNS. Y3 benevolent-browed old man, with bis passive brains tied up in a foulard, o' mornings, and his bourgeois feet adorned with carpet slippers, what grief in the past had bitten his poor soul and left its mark still sore ? " It isn't monsieur — it is madame who has made the past dark," was Renard's comment, when we discussed our landlord's probable acquaintance with regret — or remorse. Whatever secret of the past may have hovered over the Fouchet household, the evil bird had not made its nest in madame's breast, that was clear-, her smooth, white brow was the sign of a rose-leaf conscience ; that dark curtain of hair, looped ma- donna-wise over each ear, framed a face as unruffled as her conscience. She was entirely at peace with her world — and with heaven as well, that was certain. Wliatever her sins, the confessional had purged her. Like others, doubtless, she had found a husband and the provinces excellent remedies for a damaged repu- tation. She lived now in the very odor of sanctity ; the cure had a pipe in her kitchen, wath something more sustaining, on certain bright afternoons. Al- though she was daily announcing to us her ap- proaching dissolution — "I die, mesdames — I die of ennui " — it seemed to me there were still signs, at times, of a vigorous resuscitation. The cure's visits were wont to produce a deeper red in the deep bloom of her cheek ; the mayor and his wife, who drank their Sunday coffee in the arbor, brought, as did Beatrix's advent to Dante, vita nuova to this homesick Parisian. 74 THREE NORMANDY INNS. There were other pleasures in her small world, also, which made life endurable. Bargaining-, when one teems with talent, may be as exciting as any other form of conquest. Madame's days were chiefly passed in imitation of the occupa- tion so dear to an earlier, hardier race, that race kings have knighted for their powers in dealing mightily with their weaker neighbors. Madame, it is true, was only a woman, and Villerville was somewhat slimly populated. But in imitation of her remote feudal lords, she also fell upon the passing stranger, demanding tribute. When the stranger did not pass, she kept her arm in prac- tice, so to speak, by extracting the last sou in a transaction from a neighbor, or by indulging in a drama in which the comedy of insult was matched by the tragedy of contempt. One of these mortal combats it was my privilege to witness. The war arose on our announcement to Mere Mouchard, the lady of the inn by the sea, of our decision to move next door. To us Mere Mouchard presented the unruffled plumage of a dove ; her voice also was as the voice of the same, mellowed by sucking. Ten minutes later the town was assembled to lend its assistance at the en- counter between our two landladies. Each stood on their respective doorsteps with arms akimbo and head thrust forward, as geese protrude head and tongue in moments of combat. And it was thus, the mere hissed,that her boarders were stolen from her — under her very nose — while her back was turned, with no more thought of honesty or shame than a (?). The word was never uttered. The THREE NORMANDY INNS. 75 mere's insult was drowned in a storm of voices ; for there came a loud protest from the group of neighbors. Madame Fouchet, meanwhile, was sus- taining- her own role with great dignity. Her at- titude of self-control could only have been learned in a school where insult was an habitual weapon. She smiled, an infuriating-, exasperating-, success- ful smile. She showed a set of defiant white teeth, and to her proud white throat she g-ave a boast- ful curve. Was it her fault if ces dames knew what comfort and cleanliness were ? if they pre- ferred "des chambres garnies avec gout, vraiment ar- tistiques " — to rooms fit only for peasants ? Ces dames had just come from Paris ; doubtless, they were not yet accustomed to provincial customs — aux moeurs provinciales. Then there were exchang-ed certain melodious acerbities, which proved that these ladies had entered the lists on previous oc- casions, and that each was well practised in the other's methods of warfare. Opportunely, Kenard appeared on the scene ; his announcement that we proposed still to continue taking- our repasts with the mere, was as oil on the sea of trouble. A rec- onciliation was immediately efiected, and the street as immediately lost all interest in the play, the audience melting- away as speedily as did the wrath of the disputants. " Le bon Dieu soit loice," cried Madame Fouchet, pulting-, as she mounted the stairs a few moments later — " God be praised " — she hadn't come here to the provinces to learn her rights — to be taught her alphabet. Mere Mouchard, forsooth, who wanted a week's board as indemnity for her loss 76 THREE NORJIAXDY I2f^NS. of us ! A week's board — for lodgings scorned by peasants ! " All, these Normans ! what a people, what a people ! The}' would peel the skin off j'our back! They would sell their childi-en ! They would cheat the devil himself : " "You, madame, I presume, are from Paris." Madame smiled as she answered, a thin fine smile, richly seasoned "oith scorn. " Ah, mesdames ! All the world can't boast of Paris as a birthplace, un- fortunateh'. I also, I am a Xorman, mais je ne m'cn jiche pas ! Most of Tuy life, however, I've lived in Paris, thank God ! " She lifted her head as she spoke, and swept her hands about her waist to adjust the broad belt, an action preg- nant with suggestions. For it was thus conveyed to us, delicately, that such a figure as hers was not bred on rustic diet ; also, that the Parisian glaze had not failed of its eft'ect on the coarser provin- cial clay. Meanwhile, below in the garden, her husband was meekly tying up his rose-trees. Neither of the landladies' husbands had figured in the street-battle. It had been a purely Amazo- nian encounter, bloodless but bitter. Both the husbands of these two belligerent landladies ap- peared singularly well trained. Mouchard, indeed, occupied a comparatively humble sphere in his wife's menage. He was perpetually to be seen in the court-yard, at the back of the house, washing dogs, or dishes, in a costume in which the greatest economy of cloth compatible with decency had been triumphantly solved. His wife ran the house, THREE NORMANDY INNS. 77 and he ran the errands, an arrangement which, apparently, worked greatly to the satisfaction of both. But Mouchard was not the first or the second French husband who, on the threshold of his connubial experience, had doubtless had his role in life appointed to him, filling the same with patient acquiescence to the very last of the lines. There is something very touching in the subjec- tion of French husbands. In point of meekness they may well serve, I think, as models to their kind. It is a meekness, however, which does not hint of humiliation; for, after all, what humilia- tion can there be in being thoroughly understood ? The Frenchwoman, by virtue of centuries of ac- tivity, in the world and in the field, has become an expert in the art of knowing her man ; she has not worked by his side, under the burn of the noon sun, or in the cimmerian darkness of the shop-rear, counting the pennies, for nothing. In exchanging her illusions for the bald front of fact, man himself has had to pay the penalty of this mixed gain. She tests him by purely professional standards, as man tests man, or as he has tested her, when in the ante-matrimonial days he weighed her dot in the scale of his need. The French- woman and Shakespeare are entirely of one mind ; they perceive the great trath of imity in the scheme of things : " "\\'oman's test is man's taste." This is the first among the great traths in the feminine grammar of assent. French masculine taste, as its criterion, has established the excellent 78 THREE NORMANDY INNS. doctrine of utilitarianism. With quick apprehen- sion the Frenchwoman has mastered this fact ; she has cleverly taken a lesson from ophidian habits — she can change her skin, quickly shedding the sentimentalist, when it comes to serious action, to don the duller raiment of utility. She has ac- cepted her world, in other words, as she finds it, with a philosopher's shrug. But the philosopher is lined with the logician ; for this system of life has accomiDlished the miracle of making its women logical ; they have grasped the subtleties of in- ductive reasoning. Marriage, for example, they know is entered into solely on the principle of mutual benefit; it is therefore a partnership, hon; now, in partnerships sentiments and the emotions are out of place, they only serve to dim the eye ; those commodities, therefore, are best conveyed to other markets than the matrimonial one ; for in purely commercial transactions one has need of perfect clearness of vision, if only to keep one well practised in that simple game called looking out for one's own interest. In Frenchwomen, the ra- tiocinationist is extraordinarily developed; her logic penetrates to the core of things. Hence it is that Mouchard washes dishes. Monsieur Jourdain, in Moliere's comedy, who expressed such surprise at finding that he had been talking prose for forty years without know- ing it, was no more amazed than would Mere Mou- chard have been had you announced to her that she was a logician ; or that her husbands daily occu- pations in the bright little court-yard were the result of a system. Yet both facts were true. THREE NORMANDY INNS. 79 In that process we now know as the survival of the fittest, the mere's capacity had snufi'ed out her weaker spouse's incompetency ; she had taken her place at the helm, because she belonged there by virtue of natural fitness. There were no tender il- lusions which would suffer, in seeing the husband allotted to her, probably by her parents and the dot system, relegated to the ignominy of passing his days washing dishes— dishes which she cooked and served— dishes, it should be added, which she was entirely conscious were cooked by the hand of genius, and which she garnished with a sauce and served with a smile, such as only issue from French kitchens. CHAPTER Vm. THE QUARTIEE LATIN ON THE BEACH. -t)|V^ The beach, one morning', we ^,^ ^ A^ found suddenly peopled with ^IJW^^^^j artists. It was a little city of tents. Beneath striped awn- ings and white umbrellas a multitude of flat-capped heads sat immovably still on their three-legged stools, or darted hither and thither. Paris was evidently beginning to empty its studios ; the Normandy beaches now furnished the better model. One morning we were in luck. A certain blonde beard had counted early in the day on having the beach to himself. He had posed his model in the open daylight, that he might paint her in the sun. He had placed her, seated on an edge of sea- wall ; for a background there was the curve of the yellow sands and the flat breadth of the sea, with the droop of the sky meeting the sea miles away. The girl was a slim, fair shape, with long, thin legs and delicately moulded arms; she was dressed in the fillet and chiton of Greece. During her long poses she was as immovable as an antique marble ; her natural grace and prettiness were transfigured into positive beauty by the flowing lines and the pink draperies of her Attic costume. THREE NORMANDY INNS. 81 Seated thus, she was a breathing embodiment of the best Greek period. Wlien the rests came, her jump from the wall landed her square on her feet and at the latter end of the nineteenth cen- tury. Once free, she bounded from her perch on the high sea-wall. In an instant she had tucked her tinted draperies within the slender girdle ; her sandalled feet must be untrammelled, she was about to take her run on the beach. Soon she was pelting, irreverently, her painter with a shower of loose pebbles. Next she had challenged him to a race ; when she reached the goal, her thin, bare arms were uplifted as she clapped and shouted for glee ; the Quartier Latin in her blood was having its moment of high revelry in the morning sun. This little grisette, running about free and un- shackled in her loose draperies, quite unabashed in her state of semi-nudity — gay, reckless, wooing pleasure on the wing, surely she might have posed as the embodied archetype of France itself: So has this loagan among modern nations borrowed some- thing of the antique spirit of wantonness. Along with its theft of the Attic charm and grace, it has captured, also, something of its sublime indiffer- ence ; in the very teeth of the dull modern world, France has laughed opinion to scorn. At noon the tents were all deserted. It was at this hour that the inn garden was full. The gay- ety and laughter overflowed the walls. Ever3^one talked at once ; the orders were like a rattle of ar- tillery—painting for hours in the open air gives a fine edge to appetite, and patience is never the 82 THREE NORMANDY INNS. true twin of hunger. Everything- but the potage was certain to be on time. Colinette, released from her Greek draperies, with her Parisian bodice had recovered the blague of the studios. " Sacre nom de — on reste done claquemure ainsi toute la matinee ! And all for an omelette — a puny, good-for-nothing omelette. And you — ■ you've lost your tongue, it seems ? " And a shrill voice pierced the air as Colinette gave her painter the hint of her prodding elbow. With the appear- ance of the omelette the reign of good humor would return. Everything then went as merrily as that marriage-bell which, apparently, is the only one absent in Bohemia's gay chimes. These arbors had obviously been built out of pure charity: they appeared to have been con- structed on the principle that since man, painting man, is often forced to live alone, from economic necessity, it is therefore only the commonest char- ity to provide him with the proper surroundings for eating d deux. The little tables beneath the kiosks were strictly tete-a-tete tables; even the chairs, like the visitors, appeared to come only in couples. The Frenchman has been reproached with the sin of ingratitude ; has been convicted, indeed, as possessed of more of that pride that comes late — the day after the gift of bounty has been given — than some other of his fellow-mortals. Yet here were a company of Frenchmen — and French- women — proving in no ordinary fashion their equipment in this rare virtue. It was early in THREE NORMANDY INNS. 83 May ; up yonder, wliere the Seine flows beneath the Parisian bridges, the pulse of the gay Paris world was beating- in time to the spring- in the air. Yet these artists had deserted the asphalt of the boulevards for the cobbles of a village street, the delights of the cafe chantant had been exchanged for the miracle of the moon rising over the sea, and for the song of the thrush in the bush. The Frenchman, more easily and with simplef- art than any of his modern brethren, can change the prose of our dull, practical life into poetry ; he can turn lyrical at a moment's notice. He pos- sesses the power of transmuting the commonplace into the idyllic, by merely clapping on his cap and turning his back on the haunts of men. He has retained a singular — an almost ideal sensitive- ness, of mental cuticle — such acuteness of sensa- tion, that a journey to a field will oftentimes yield him all the flavor of a long voyage, and a sudden introduction to a forest, the rapture that commonly comes only with some unwonted aspect of nature. Perhaps it is because of this natural poet indwell- ing in a Frenchman, that makes him content to remain so much at home. Surely the extraordi- nary is the costly necessity for barren minds ; the richly-endoA\ed can see the beauty that lies the other side of their own door-step. CHAPTER IX. A NORMAN HOUSEHOLD. ""~~ — ■. ■ • .am There were two paths in the village that were well worn. One was that which led the village up into the fields. The other tillers of the soil down into the village, to the door-step of the justice of _ _, the peace. A good Norman is no Norman who has not a lawsuit on hand. Anything will serve as a pretext for a quarrel. No sum of money is so small as not to warrant a breaking of the closest blood-ties, if thereby one's rights may be secured. Those beautiful stripes of rye, barley, corn, and wheat up yonder in the fields, that melt into one another like sea- tones — down here on the benches before the juge de paix — what quarrels, what hatreds, what evil passions these few acres of land have brought their owners, facing each other here like so many demons, ready to spring at the others' throats! Brothers on these benches forget they are brothers, and sisters that they have suckled the same mother. THREE NORMANDY INNS. 85 Two more yards of the soil that should have been Fillette's instead of Jeanne's, and the grave will enclose both before the clenched fist of either is relaxed, and the last sous in the stocking will be spent before the war between their respective lawyers will end. Manj^ and many were the tales told us of the domestic tragedies, born of wills mal-administered, of the passions of hate, ambition, and despair kept at a white heat because half the village owned, up in the fields, what the other half coveted. Many, also, and fierce were the heated faces we looked in upon at the justice's door, in the very throes of the great moment of facing justice, and their adversary. Our own way, by preference, took us up into the fields. Here, in the broad open, the farms lay scattered like fortifications over a plain. Doubt- less, in the earlier warlike days they had served as such. Once out of the narrow Villerville streets, and the pastoral was in full swing. The sea along this coast was not in the least in- sistant ; it allowed the shore to play its full gamut of power. There were no tortured shapes of trees or plants, or barren wastes, to attest the fierce ways of the sea with the land. Eemiuders of the sea and of the life that is lived in ships were conspic- uous features everywhere, in the pastoral scenes that began as soon as the town ended. Women carrying sails and nets toiled through the green aisles of the roads and lanes. Fishing-tackle hung in company with tattered jerseys outside of huts hidden in grasses and honeysuckle. The shep- 86 THREE NORMANDY INNS. herdesses, as they followed the sheep inland into the heart of the pasture land, were busy netting- the coarse cages that trap the finny tribe. Long-- limbed, vigorous-faced, these shepherdesses were Biblical figures. In their coarse homespun, with only a skirt and a shirt, with their bare legs, half-open bosoms, and the fine poise of their blond heads, theirs was a beauty that commanded the homage accorded to a rude virginity. In some of the fields, in one of our many walks, the grass was being cut. In these fields the groups of men and women were thickest. The long scythes were swung mightily by both ; the voices, a gay treble of human speech, rose above the me- tallic swish of the sharp blades cutting into the succulent grasses. The fat pasture lands rose and sank in undula- tions as rounded as the nascent breasts of a young Greek maiden. A medley of color j)layed its charming variations over fields, over acres of pop- pies, over plains of red clover, over the backs of spotted cattle, mixing, mingling, blending a thou- sand twists and turns into one exquisite, harmoni- ous whole. There was no discordant note, not one harsh contrast ; even the hay-ricks seemed to have been modelled rather than pitched into shape; their sloping sides and finely pointed apexes giv- ing them the dignity of structural intent. Why should not a peasant, in blouse and sabots, with a grinning idiot face, have put the picture out ? But he did not. He was walking, or rather waddling, toward us, between two green walls that rose to be arched by elms that hid the blue of THREE NORMANDY INNS. 87 the sky. This lane was the kind of lane one sees only in Devonshire and in Normandy. There are lanes and lanes, as, to quote our friend the cob- bler, there are cures and cures. But only in these above-named countries can one count on walk- ing straight into the heart of an emerald, if one turns from the high-road into a lane. The trees, in these Devonshire and Normandy by-paths, have ways of their own of vaulting into space; the hedges are thicker, sweeter, more vocal with in- sect and song notes than elsewhere ; the roadway itself is softer to the foot, and narrower — only two are expected to walk therein. It was through such a lane as this that the coarse, animal shape of a peasant was walking toward us. His legs and body were horribly twisted; the dangling arms and crooked limbs ap- peared as if caricaturing the gnarled and tortured boughs and trunks of the apple-trees. The peas- ant's blouse was filthy ; his sabots were reeking with dirty straw ; his feet and ankles, bare, were blacker than the earth over which he was pain- fully crawling; and on his face there was the vacuous, sensuous deformity of the smile idiocy wears. Again I ask, why did he not disfigure this fair scene, and put out something of the beauty of the day? Is it because the French peasant seems now to be an inseparable adjunct of the Frenchman's landscape? That even deformity has been so handled by the realists as to make us see beauty in ugliness ? Or is it that, as moderns, we are all bitten by the rabies of the picturesque ; that all things serve and are acceptable so long as 88 THREE NORMANDY INNS. we have our necessary note of contrast ? Certain it is tliat it appears to be the peasant's blouse that perpetuates the Salon, and perhaps — who knows ? — when over-emigration makes our own American farmer too poor to wear a boiled shirt when he ploughs, we also may develop a school of land- scape, with fignres. Meanwhile the walk and the talk had made Charm thirsty. " Why should we not go," she asked, " across the next field, into that farm-house yonder, and beg for a glass of milk ? " The farm-house might have been waiting for us, it was so still. Even the grasses along its sloping roof nodded, as if in welcome. The house, as we approached it, together with its out-buildings, assumed a more imposing aspect than it had from the road. Its long, low fagade, broken here and there by a miniature window or a narrow doorway, appeared to stretch out into interminable length beneath the towering beeches and the snarl of the peach-tree boughs. The stillness was ominous — it was so profound. The only human in sight was a man in a distant field ; he was raking the ploughed ground. He was too far ^tway to hear the sound of our voices. "Perhaps the entire establishment is in the fields," said Charm, as we neared the house. Just then a succession of blows fell on our ear. " Someone is beating a mattress within, we shall have our glass after all." We knocked. But no one answered our knock. The beating continued ; the sound of the blows fell as regularly as if machine-impelled. Then a THREE NORM AND Y INNS. 89 cry rose up : it was tlie cry of a young, strong voice, and it was followed by a low wail of anguish. The door stood half-open, and this is what we saw: A man — tall, strong, powerful, with a face purple Ycith passion — bending over the crouching form of a girl, whose slender body was quivering, shrinking, and writhing as the man's hand, armed with a short stick, fell, smiting her defenceless back and limbs. Her wail went on as each blow fell. In a corner, crouched in a heap, sitting on her heels, was a woman. She was clapping her hands. Her eyes were starting from her head ; she clapped as the blows came, and above the girl's wail her strong, exultant voice arose — calling out : " Tiie-Ja ! Tue-Ia ! " It was the voice of a triumphant fury. The backs of all these people were turned upon us ; they had not seen, much less heard, our en- trance. Someone else had seen us, however. A man with a rake over his shoulder rushed in through the open door ; it was the peasant we had seen in the field. He seized Charm by the arm, and then my own hand was grasped as in a g'rip of iron. Be- fore we had time for resistance he had pushed us out before him into the entry, behind the outer door. This latter he slammed. He put his broad back against it ; then he dropped his rake and be- gan to mop his face, violently, with a filthy hand- kerchief he plucked from beneath his blouse. " Que. chance ! Kom de Dieu, que chance ! Je v'- avions vue, I saw you just in time — just in time — " 90 THREE NORMANDY INNS. " But, I must go in — I Avish to go back ! '' But Charm might as well have attempted to move a pillar of stone. The peasant's coarse, good-humored face broke into a broad laugh. " Pardon, mam'selle — j'n bougeons pas. Not' maitree' eiicolere ; c' son Jour — faui pas Virriter — au'- joiCliui.'' Meantime, during the noise of our forced exit and the ensuing dialogue, the scene within had evidently changed in character, for the blows had ceased. Steps could be heard crossing and re- crossing the wooden floor. A creaking sound suc- ceeded to the beating — it was the creaking and groaning of a wooden staircase bending beneath the weight of a human figure. In an upper cham- ber there came the sound of a quiet, subdued sob- bing now. They were the sobs of the girl. She at least had been released. A face, cruel, pinched, hardened, with flaming agate eyes and an insolent smile, stood looking out at us tlirough the dulled, dusty window-pane. It was the fury. Meanwhile the peasant was still defending his post. A moment later the tall frame of the farmer suddenly filled the open doorway. The peasant well-nigh fell into his master's arms. The farm- er's face was still terrible to look upon, but the purple stain of passion was now turned to red. There was a mocking insolence in his tone as he addressed us, that matched with the woman's un- concealed glee. " Will you not come in, mesdames ? Will you TUREE NORMANDY INNS. 91 not rest a while after your long- walk ? " On the man's hard face there was still the shadow of a sinister cruelty as he waved his hand toward the room within. The peasant's g-ood-hnmored, loutish smile, and his stupid, cow-like eyes, by contrast, were the eyes and smile of a benevolent deity. The smile told us we were right, as w^e slunk away toward the open road. The head kejjt nod- ding" approval as we vanished presently beneath the shade of the protecting trees. The fields, as we swept rapidly past them, were as bathed in peace as when we had left them ; there was even a more voluptuous content abroad : for the twilight was wrapping about the land- scape its poppied dusk of gloom and shadow. Above, the birds were swirling in sweeping circles, raining down the ecstasj^ of their night-song ; still above, far beyond them, across a zenith pure, transparent, ineffably pink, illumined wisps of clouds were trailing their scarf -like shapes. It was a scene of beatific i^eace. Across the fields came the sound of a distant bell. It was the An- gelus. The ploughmen stopped to doff their hats, the women to bend their heads in prayer. And in our ears, louder than the vibrations of the hamlet bell, louder than the bird-notes and the tumult of the voluptuous insect whirr, there rang the thud, thud of cruel blows falling on quiv- ering human flesh. The curtain that hid the life of the peasant- farmer had indeed been lifted. CHAPTER X. ERNESTINE. 'Ah, mesdames, what will you have ? The French peasant is like that. When he is in a rag'e nothing stops him — he beats any- thing-, everything ; what- ever his hand encounters must suffer when he is an- gry ; his wife, his child, his servant, his horse, they are all alike to him when he sees red." Monsieur Fouchet was tying up his rose-trees ; we were watching him from our seat on the green bench. Here in the garden, beneath the blue vault, the roses were drooping from very heaviness of g"lory ; they gave forth a scent that made the head swim. It was a healthy, virile intoxication, liow- ever, the salt in the air steadying- one's nerves. Nature, not being mortal and cursed with a con- science, had risen that morning in a mood for ca- rousa' ■; at this hour of noon she had reached the point of ecstatic stupor. No state of trance was ever so exquisite. The air was swooning, but how delicate its g-asps, as if it fell away into calm ! How adorably blue the sky in its debauch of sun- THREE NORMANDY INNS. 93 lit ether ! The sea, too, although it reeled slight- ly, unsteadily rising- oul}^ to fall away, what a radi- ance of color it maintained ! Here in the garden the di'owsy air would lift a flower petal, as some dreamer sunk in hasheesh slumber might touch a loved hand, only to let it slii? away in nerveless impotence. Never had the charm of this Nor- mandy sea-coast been as compelling; never had the divine softness of this air, this harmonious marriage of earth-scents and sea-smells seemed as perfect ; never before had the delicacy of the foli- age and color-gradations of the sky as triumph- antly i^roved that noAvhere else, save in France, can nature be at once sensvious and poetic. We looked for something other than pure enjoy- ment from this golden moment ; we hoped its beauty would help us to soften our landlord. This was the moment we had chosen to excite his sym- pathies, also to gain counsel from him concerning the tragedy we had witnessed the da}^ before. He listened to our tale with evident interest, but there was a disappointing coolness in his ej^e. As the narrative i^roceeded, the brutality of the situation failed to sting him to even a mild form of indig- nation. He went on tying his rose-trees, his ardor expending itself in choice snippings of the stray stalks and rebellious tendrils. " This Guichon," he said, after a brief moment, in the tone that goes with the pursuance of an occupation that has become a passion. "This Guichon — I know him. He is a hard man, but no harder than many others, and he has had his losses, which don't always soften a man. ' Qui terre a, 94 THREE NORMANDY INNS. guerre a,' Moliere says, and Guichon has had many lawsuits, losing- them all. He has been twice mar- ried ; that was his daughter by his first wife he was touching up like that. He married only the other day Madame Tier, a rich woman, a neighbor, their lands join. It was a great match for him, and she, the wife, and his daughter don't hit it off, it appears. There was some talk of a marriage for the girl lately ; a good match presented itself, but the girl will have none of it ; perhaps that ac- counts for the beating." A rose, overblown with its fulness of splendor, di'opped in a shower at Fouchet's feet just then. " Tiens, elle est finie, celJe-la" he cried, with an accent of regret, and he stooped over the fallen petals as if they had been the remains of a friend. Then he sighed as he swept the mass into his broad jjalm. " Come, let us leave him to the funeral of his roses ; he hasn't the sensibilities of an insect ; " and Charm grasped my arm to lead me over the turf, across the gravel paths, toward the tea-house. This tottering structure had become one of our favorite retreats ; in the poetic raise- en- scene of the garden it played the part of Ruin. It was ab- surdly, ridiculously out of repair ; its gaping beams and the sunken, dejected floor could only be due to intentional neglect. Fouchet evidently had grasped the secrets of the laws of contrast ; the deflected angle of the tumbling roof made the clean-cut garden beds doubly true. Nature had had compassion on the aged little building, how- ever ; the clustering, fragrant vines, in their hatred THREE NORMANDY INNS. 95 of nudity, had invested the prose of a wreck with the poetry of drapery. The tip -tilted settee be- neath the odorous roof became, in time, our chosen seat ; from that perch we coukl overlook the garden- walls, the beach, the curve of the shore, the grasses and hollyhocks in our neighbor's garden, the latter startlingly distinct against the great arch of the sky. It was here Renard found us an hour later. To him, likewise, did Charm narrate our extraordinary experience of yesterday, with much adjunct of fiery comment, embellishment of gesture, and imitative pose. " Ye gods, what a scene to paint ! You were in luck^in luck ; why wasn't I there ? " was Renard's tribute to human pity. " Oh, you are all alike, all — nothing moves you — you haven't common human sympathies — you haven't the rudiments of a heart ! You are terri- ble — all of you — terrible ! " A moment after she had left us, as if the narrowness of the little house stifled her. With long, swinging steps she passed out, to air her indignation, apparently, beneath the wall of the espaliers. " Splendid creature, isn't she % " commented Re- nard, following- the long lines of the girl's flut- tering muslin gown, as he plucked at his mus- tache. " She should always wear white and gold — what is that stuff? — and be lit up like that with a kind of goddess-like anger. She is wrong, how- ever," he went on, a moment later; "those of us who live here aren't really barbarians, only we get used to things. It's the peasants themselves that 96 THREE NORMANDY INNS. force us ; they wouldn't stand interference. A peasant is a kind of king on his own domain ; he does anything- he likes, short of murder, and he doesn't always stop at that." " But surely the Government — at least their Church, ought to teach them " " Oh, their Church ! they laugh at their cures — till they come to die. He's a heathen, that's what the French peasant is — there's lots of the middle ages abroad up there in the country. Along here, in the coast villages, the nineteenth century has crept in a bit, humanizing them, but ihefonds is always the same ; they're by nature avaricious, sordid, cruel ; they'll do anything for money ; there isn't anything sacred for them except their pocket." A few days later, in our friend the cobbler we found a more sympathetic listener. " Dame ! I also used to beat my wife," he said, contempla- tively, as he scratched his herculean head, "but that was when I was a Christian, when I went to confession ; for the confessional was made for that, c'est pour laver le linge sale des consciences, ca " (in- terjecting his epigram). " But now — now that I am a free-thinker, I have ceased all that ; I don't beat her," pointing to his old wife, " and neither do I drink or swear." " It's true, he's good — he is, now," the old wife nodded, with her slit of a smile ; " but," she added, quickly, as if even in her husband's religious past there had been some days of glory, "he was al- ways just— even then — when he beat me." " C'est tres femme, ga — hein, mademoiselle ? " And THREE NORMANDY INNS. 97 the cobbler cocked his head in critical pose, with a philosopher's smile. The result of the interview, however, although not entirely satisfactory, was illuminating-, besides this lig-ht which had been thrown on the cobbler's reformation. For the cobbler was a cousin, dis- tant in point of kinship, but still a cousin, of the brutal farmer and father. He knew all the jooints of the situation, the chief of which was, as Fouchet had hinted, that the girl had refused to wed the hon parti, who was a connection of the step-mother. As for the step -mother's murderous outcry, " Kill her ! kill her ! " the cobbler refused to take a dra- matic -sdew of this outburst. " In such moments, you understand, one loses one's head ; brutality always intoxicates ; she was a little drunk, you see." "UTien we proposed our modest little scheme, that of sending for the girl and taking her, for a time at least, into our service, merely as a change of scene, the cobbler had found nothing but ad- miration for the project. " It will be i^erfect, mesdames. They, the parents, will ask nothing better. To have the girl out at service, awaj', and yet not disgracing them Iw taking a place with any other farmer ; yes, they will like that, for they are rich, you see, and wealth always respects it- self. Ah, yes, it's perfect ; I'll arrange all that — all the details." Two days later the result of the aiTangement stood before us. She was standing with her arms crossed, her fingers clasping her elbows — with her very best peasant manner. She was neatly, and. 98 THREE NORMANDY INNS. for a peasant, almost fashionably attired in her holiday dress— a short, black skirt, white stock- ings, a flowery kerchief crossed over her broad bosom, and on her pretty hair a richly tinted blue foulard. She was very well dressed for a peasant, and, from the point of view of two travellers, of about as much use as a plough. " It's a beautiful scheme, and it's as dramatic as the fifth act of a play ; but what shall we do with her?" " Oh," rex)lied Charm, carelessly, " there isn't anything in particular for her to do. I mean to buy her a lot of clothes, like those she has on, and she can walk about in the garden or in the fields." " Ah, I see ; she's to be a kind of a perambu- lating figure-i^iece " " Yes, that's about it. I dare say she will be very useful at sunset, in a dim street ; so few peas- ants wear anything ai)X)roaching to costume now- adays." Ernestine herself, however, as we soon discov- ered, had an entirely diiferent conception of her vocation. She was a vigorous, active young woman, wdth the sap of twenty summers in her lusty young veins. Her energies soon found vent in a continuous round of domestic excitements. There were windows and floors that cried aloud to Heaven to be scrubbed ; there were holes in the sheets to make mam'zelle's lying between them une honte, une vraie honte. As for Madame Fouchet's little weekl}^ bill, Dieu de Dieu, it was filled with such extortions as to make the very angels weep. Madame and Ernestine did valiant battle over THREE NORMANDY INNS. 99 those bills thereafter. Ernestine was possessed of the courage of a time martyr ; she could suffer and submit to the scourge, in the matter of personal persecution, for the religion of her own convic- tions ; but in the service of her rescuer, she could fight ■v\dth the fierceness of a common soldier. " "When Xorman meets Norman "" Charm be- gan one daj", the sound of voices, in a high treble of anger, coming in to us through the windows. But Ernestine was knocking at the door, Avith a note in her hand. " An answer is asked, mesdames," she said, in a voice of honey, as she di'opped her low courtesy. This was the missive : ALONG AN OLD POST-ROAD TO HONFLEUR AND TROUVILLE. CHAPTEE XL TO AN OLD MANOE. ''^''. "Will ces dames ioin me in a .'• marauding- expedition ? Like '4i tlie poet Villon, I am about to turn marauder, house-breaker, thief. I shall hope to end the excursion by one act, at least, of highway robbery. I shall lose courage without the enliv- ening' presence of ces dames. We will start when the day is at its best, we will return when the moon smiles. In case of finding- none to rob, the coach of the desperadoes will be g-ar- risoned with provisions ; Henri will accompany us as counsellor, purveyor, and bearer of arms and costumes. The carriage for ces tZames will stop the way at the hour of eleven. " I have the honor to sig-n mj^self their humble servant and co-conspirator. " John Renaed." "This, in plain English," was Charm's laconic translation of this note, " m'^'ans that he wishes us to be ready at eleven for the excursion to P , 104 ' ■ • • ■ ■ TliBEE NORMANDY INNS. to spend the day, you may remember, at tliat old manoir. He wants to x>aiut in a background, be said yesterday, while we stroll about and look at the old place. What shall I wear ? " In an hour we were on the road. A jaunty yellow cart, laden with a girl on the front seat ; with a man, tawny of mustache, broad of shoulder, and dark of eye, with face shining to match the spring in the air and that fair face be- side him; laden also with another lady on the back seat, beside whom, upright and stiff, with folded arms, sat Henri, costumer, valet, cook, and groom. It was in the latter capacity that Henri was now posing. The role of groom was uppermost in his orderly mind, although at intervals, when his foot chanced to touch a huge luncheon-basket with which the cart was also laden, there were be- traying signs of anxiety ; it was then that the chef crept back to life. This spring in the air was all very well, but how would it affect the sauces? This great question was written on Henri's brow in a network of anxious wrinkles. " Henri," I remarked, as we were wheeling down the roadway, " I am quite certain you have put up enough luncheon for a regiment." " Madame has said it, for a regiment ; Monsieur Eenard, when he works, eats with the hunger of a wolf." "Henri, did you get in all the rags?" This came from Eenard on the front seat, as he plied his steed with the whip. " The costume of Monsieur le Marquis, and also of Madame la Marquise de Pompadour, are be' THREE KORMAyDY IXXS. 105 neath my feet in the valise, Monsieur Eenard. I have the sword between m}' legs," replied Henri, the costumer coming- to the surface long enough to readjust the sword. " Capital fellow, Henri, never forgets anything," said Reuard, in English. " Couldn't we offer a libation or something, on such a morning " " On such a morning," interrupted the painter, " one should be seated next to a charming young lady who has the genius to wear Nile green and white ; even a painter with an Honorable Mention behind him and fame still ahead, in spite of the Mention, is satisfied. You know a Greek deit}^ was nothing to a painter, modern, and of the French school, in point of fastidiousness." " Nonsense ! it's the American woman who is fastidious, when it comes to clothes." Meanwhile, there was one of the part}" who was looking at the road ; that also was arrayed in Xile green and white ; the tall trees also held umbrel- las above us, but these coverings were woven of leaves and sky. This bit of roadway appeared to have slipped down from the upper countr\\ and to have carried much of the upper country with it. It was highway posing as pure rustic. It had brought all its pastoral paraphernalia along. Noth- ing had been forgotten : neither the hawthorn and the osier hedges, nor the tree-trunks, suddenly grown modest at sight of the sea, burying their nuditj' in nests of vines, nor the trick which elms and beeches have, of growing arches in the sky. Timbered farm-houses were here, also thatched 106 THREE NORMANDY INNS. huts, to make the next villa-gate gain in stateli- ness ; apple orchards were dotted about with such a knowing" air of wearing- the long- line of the At- lantic g-irdled about their g-narled trunks, that one could not believe pure accident had carried them to the edg"e of the sea. There were several miles of this driving along beneath these green aisles. Through the screen of the hedges and the crowd- ed tree-trunks, picture succeeded picture ; bits of the sea were caught between slits of cliff; farm- houses, huts, and villas lay smothered in blossoms; above were heights whereon poplars seemed to shiver in the sun, as they wrapped about them their shroud-like foliage ; meadows slipped away from the heights, plunging seaward, as if wearying for the ocean ; and through the whole this line of green roadway threaded its path with sinuous grace, serpentining, coiling, braiding in land and sea in one harmonious, inextricable blending of incomparable beauty. One could quite compre- hend, after even a short acquaintance with this road, that two gentlemen of Paris, as difficult to please as Daubiguy and Isabey, should have seen points of excellence in it. There are all sorts of ways of being a painter. Perhaps as good as any, if one cares at all about a trifling matter like beauty, is to know a good thing when one sees it. That poet of the brush, Daubigny, not only was q-ifted with this very un- usual talent in a painter, but a good thing could actually be entrusted in his hands after its dis- covery. And herein, it appears to me, lies all the difference between good and bad painting ; not THREE NORMANDY INNS. 107 I only is an artist — any artist — to be judged by what he sees, but also by what he does with a fact after he's acquired it — whether he turns it into poetry or prose. I might incautiously have sprung these views on the artist on the front seat, had he not wisely forestalled my outburst by one of his own. " By the way," he broke in ; " by the way, I'm not doing my duty as cicerone. There's a church near here — we're coming to it in a moment — famous — eleventh or twelfth century, romanesque style — yes — that's right, although Vm somewhat shaky when it comes to architecture — and an old manoir, museum now, Avith lots of old furniture in it — in the manoir, I mean." " There's the church now. Oh, let us stop ! " In point of fact there were two churches be- fore us. There was one of ivy : nave, roof, aisles, walls, and conic-shaped top, as perfectly defined in green as if the beautiful mantle had been cut and fitted to the hidden stone structure. Every few moments the mantle would be lifted by the light breeze, as might a i^riest's vestment; it would move and waver, as if the building were a human frame, changing its posture to ease its long standing. Between this church of stone and this church of vines there were signs of the fight that had gone on for ages between them. The stones were obviousl}^ fighting decay, fight- ing ruin, fighting annihilation ; the vines were also struggling, but both time and the sun were on their side. The stone edifice was now, it is true, as Renard told us, protected by the Government 108 THREE NORMANDY INNS. — it was classed as a "monument liistorique "— but the churcli of greens was protected by the g-od of nature, and seemed to laugh aloud, as if with conscious gleeful strength. This gay, tri- umphant laugh was reflected, as if to emphasize its mockery of man's work, in the tranquil waters of a little pond, lily-leaved, garlanded in bushes, that lay hidden beyond the roadway. Through the interstices of the vines one solitary window from the tower, like a sombre eye, looked down into the pond ; it saw there, reflected as in a mir- ror, the old, the eternal picture of a dead ruin clasped by the arms of living beauty. This Criqueboeuf church presents the ideal pic- turesque accessories. It stands at the corner of two meeting roadways. It is set in an ideal pas- toral frame — a frame of sleeping fields, of waving tree-tops, of an enchanting, indescribable snarl of bushes, vines, and wild flowers. In the adjoining fields, beneath the tree-boughs, ran the long, low line of the ancient manoir — now turned into a museum. We glanced for a few brief moments at the col- lection of antiquities assembled beneath the old roof— at the Henry II. chairs, at the Pompadour- wreathed cabinets, at the long rows of panels on which are presented the whole history of France — the latter an amazing record of the industry of a certain Dr. Le Goupils. " Criqueboeuf doesn't exactly hide its light un- der a bushel, you know, although it doesn't crown a hill. No end of xDeople know it ; it sits for its portrait, I should say at least twice a week regu- THREE NORMANDY INNS. 109' larly, on an average, during- the season. English water-colorists go mad over it — they cross over on purpose to ' do ' it, and they do it extremely badly, as a rule." This was Renard's last comment of a biographi- cal and critical nature, concerning the " historical monument," as we reseated ourselves to x)ursue our way to P . " Why don't you show them how it can be done ? " " Would," coolly returned Eenard, " if it were worth while, but it isn't in my line. Henri, did 3' ou bring any ice ? " Henri, I had noticed, when we had reseated our- selves in the cart, had greeted us with an air of silent sadness; he clearly had not approved of ruins that interfered with the business of the day. " Old, monsieur, I did bring some ice, but as monsieur can imagine to himself — a two hours' sun " " Nonsense, this sun wouldn't melt a pat of but- ter ; the ice is all right, and so is the wine." Then he continued in English : " Now, ladies, as I should begin if I were a politician, or an auc- tioneer ; now, ladies, the time for confession has arrived ; I can no longer conceal from you my bur- glarious scheme. In the next turn that we shall make to the right, the park of the P manoir will disclose itself. But, between us and that Park, there is a gate. That gate is locked. Now, gates, from the time of the Garden of Eden, I take it, have been an invention of — of — the other fellow. 110 THREE NORMANDY INNS. to keep people ont. I know a way — but it's not the way you can follow. Henri and I will break down a few bars, we'll cross a few fields over yon- der, and will present ourselves, with all the virtues written on our faces, to you in the Park. Mean- while you must enter, as queens should — through the great gates. Behold, there is a cure yonder, a great friend of mine. You will step along the road- way ; you will ring a door-bell ; the cure will ap- pear ; you will ask him if it be true that the manoir of P is to rent, you have heard that he has the keys ; he will present you the keys ; you will open the big gate and find me." " But — but, Mr. Renard, I really don't see how that scheme will work." " Work ! It will work to a charm. You will see. Henri, just help the ladies, will you 1 " Henri, with decisive gravity, was helping the ladies to alight ; in another instant he had re- gained his seat, and he and Benard were fl3"ing down the roadway, out of sight. " Really— it's the coolest proceeding," Charm began. Then we looked through the bars of the park gate. The park was as green and as still as a convent garden ; a pink brick mansion, with closed window-blinds, was standing, surrounded by a terrace on one side, and by glittering par- terres on the other. " Where did he saj'' the old cure was "? " asked Charm, quite briskly, all at once. Everything had turned out preciselj'- as Renard had predicted. Doubtless he had also counted on the eflicacy of the old fable of the Peri at the Gate — one look THREE NORMANDY INNS. Ill had been sufficient to turn us into arrant conspir- ators ; to gain an entrance into that tranquil para- dise any ruse would serve. "Here's a church — he said nothing- about a church, did he % " Across the avenue, above the branches of a row of tall trees, rose the ivied facade of a rude hamlet church ; a flight of steep weedy steps led up to its Norman doorway. The door was wide open; through the arched aperture came the sounds of footfalls, of a heavy, vigorous tread; Charm ran lightly up a few of the lower steps, to peer into the open door. " It's the cure dusting the altar— shall I go in ? " " No, we had best ring — this must be his house." The clatter of the cure's sabots was the response that answered to the bell we pulled, a bell attached to a diminutive brick house lying at the foot of the churchyard. The tinkling of the cracked-voiced bell had hardly ceased when the door opened. But the cure had already taken his first glance at us over the garden hedges. CHAPTEE Xn. A NOEMAN CUEE. H frame filled the narrow ^i^race of his manner, a ' ' " his calotte in hand, with an air of homage, made also our own errand the more difficult. I had already begun to murmur the nature of our errand: we were passing, we had seen the manoir opposite, we had heard it was to rent, also that he. Monsieur le Cure, had the keys. Yes, the keys were here. Then the velvet in Monsieur le Cure's eyes turned to bronze, as they looked out at us from beneath the fine dome of brow. " I have the keys of the garden only, mesdames," he replied, with perfect but somewhat distant courtesy ; "the gardener, down the road yonder. THREE NORMANDY INNS. 113 has the keys of the house. .Do you really wish to rent the house ? " He had seen through our ruse with quick Nor- man penetration. He had not, from the first, been in the least deceived. It became the more difficult to smooth the situ- ation into shape. We had thought perhaps to rent a villa, we were in one now at Villerville. If Monsieur le cvire would let us look at the garden. Monsieur Kenard, whom i^erhaps he remem- bered " M. Kenard ! Oh ho ! Oh ho ! I see it all now," and a deep, mellow laugh smote the air. The keen- ness in the fine eyes melted into mirth, a mirth that laid the fine head back on the broad shoul- ders, that the laugh that shook the powerful frame might have the fuller play. "Ah, mes enfanfs, I see it all now — it is that scoundrel of a boy. I'll warrant he's there, over yonder, already. He was here yesterday, he Avas here the day before, and he is afraid, he is ashamed to ask again for the keys. But come, mes enfanfs, come, let us go in search of him." And the little door was closed with a slam. Down the broad roadway the next instant fluttered the old cure's soutane. We followed, but could scarcely keep pace with the brisk, vigorous strides. The sabots ploughed into the dust. The cane stamped along in company with the sabots, all three in a fury of impatience. The cure's step and his manner might have been those of a boy, burning with haste to discover a playmate in hiding. All the keenness and shrewdness on the fine, ruddy face had melted 114 THREE NORMANDY INNS. into sweetness ; an exuberance of mirth seemed to be tlie sap that fed his rich nature. It was easy to see he had passed the meridian of his existence in a realm of high spirits; an irrepressible fountain within, the fountain of an unquenchable good- humor, bathed the whole man with the hues of health. Ripe red lips curved g-enerously over superb teeth ; the cheeks were glowing-, as were the eyes, the crimson below them deepening to splendor the velvet in the iris. The one severe line in the face, the thin, straight nose, ended in wide nostrils — in the quivering, mobile nostrils of the humorist. The swell of the gourmand's paunch beneath the soutane was proof that the cure was a true Norman — he had not passed a lifetime in these fertile gardens forgetful of the fact that the fine art of good living is the one indulgence the Church has left to its celibate sons. Meanwhile, our guide was peering with quick, excited gaze, through the thick foliage of the park ; his fine black eyes were sweeping the par- terre and terrace. " Ah-h ! " his rich voice cried out, mockingly ; and he stopped, suddenly, to i^lant his cane in the ground with mock fierceness. " Tiens, Monsieur le Cure ! " cried Renard, from behind a tree, in a beautiful voice. It was a voice that matched with his well-acted surprise, when he appeared, confronting us, on the other side of the tree-trunk. The cure opened his arms. " Ah, mon enfant, viens, viens ! how good it is to see thee once again ! " THREE NORMANDY INNS. 115 They were in each other's arms. The cure was pressing- his lips to Eenard's cheek, in hearty French fashion. The priest, however, adminis- tered his reproof before he released him. Ee- nard's broad shoulders received a series of pats, which turned to blows, dealt by the cure's hercu- lean hand. "Why didn't you let me know you were here, yesterday, Hein ? Answer me that. How goes the picture ? Is it set up yet ? You see, mes- dames," turning- with a reddened cheek and gleam- ing eyes, " it is thus I punish him — for he has no heart, no sensibilities — he only understands sev- erities ! And he defrauded me yesterday, he cheated me. I didn't even know of his being here till he had gone. And the picture, where is it ? " It was on an easel, sunning itself beneath the park trees. The old priest clattered along the gravelly walk, to take a look at it. " Tiens — it grows — the figures begin to move — they are almost alive. There should be a trifle more shadow under the chin, what do you think ? " Henri raised his chin. Henri had underg-one the process of transformation in our absence. He was now M. le Marquis de Pompadour— under the heart-shaped arch of the g-reat trees, he was stand- ing, resplendent in laces, in g-listening satins, leaning on a rusty, dull-jewelled sword. Eenard had mounted his palette; he was dipping already into the mounds of color that dotted the palette- board, with his long- brushes. On the canvas, in colors laid on by the touch of genius, this archway beneath which we were standing reared itself 116 THREE NORMANDY INNS. aloft ; the park trees were as tall and noble, trans- fixed in their image of immutable calm, on that strip of linen, as they towered now above us ; even the yellow cloud of the laburnum blossoms made the sunshine of the shaded g-rass, as it did here, where else no spot of sun might enter, so dense was the night of shade. The life of another day and time lived, however, beneath that shade ; Charm and the cure, as they drooj^ed over the canvas, confronted a graceful, attenuated courtier, sickening in a languor of adoration, and a spright- ly coquette, whose porcelain beauty was as fin- ished as the feathery edges of her lacy sleeves. " Tres — Men — tres—hien," said the cure, nodding his head in critical commendation. " It will be a little masterpiece. And now," waving his hand toward us, " what do you propose to do with these ladies while you are painting ? " " Oh, they can wander about," Kenard replied, abstractedly. He had alread}^ reseated himself and had begun to ply his brushes; he now saw only Henri and the hilt of the sword he w^as paint- ing in. " I knew it, I could have told you — a iDainter hasn't the manners of a peasant when he's paint- ing," cried the priest, lifting cane and hands high in air, in mock horror. " But all the better, all the better, I shall have you all to myself. Come, come with me. You can see the house later. I'll send for the gardener. It's too fine a day to be indoors. "What a day, hem ? Le hon Dieu sends us such days now and then, to make us ache for paradise. This way, this way — we'll go through the little door — THREE NORMANDY INNS. 117 m}' little door ; it was made for me, j'ou know, when the manoir was last inhabited. I and the chikben were too impatient— we suffered from that malady — all of us — we never could wait for the great gates yonder to be opened. So Mon- sieur de H built us this one." The little door oi^ened directly on the road, and on the cure's house. There was a tangle of under- brush barring the way ; but the cure pushed the briars apart with his strong hands, beating them down with his cane. When the door opened, we passed directly be- yond the roadway, to the steep steps leading to the church. The cure, before mounting the steps, swept the road, upward and downward, with his keen glance. It was the instinctive action of the provincial, scenting the chance of novelty. Some distant object, in the meeting of two distant road- ways, arrested the darting eyes ; this time, at least, he was to be rewarded for his prudence in looking about him. The object slowly resolved itself into two cratches between which hung the limp figure of a one-legged man. " Bonjonr, Monsieur Je cure." The crutches came to a standstill ; the cripple's hand went up to doff a ragged worsted cap. "Good-day, good-day, my friend ; how goes it] Not quite so stiff, hein— in such a bath of sunlight as this ? Good-day, good-day." The crutches and their burden passed on, kick- ing a little cloud of dust about the lean figure. " Unpeu cas-se, le honhormne;' he said, as he nodded to the cripple in a tone of reflection, as if the 118 THREE NORMANDY INNS. breakag-e that had befallen his humble friend were a fresh incident in his experience. " Yes, he's a little broken, the poor old man ; but then," he ad- ded, quickly renewing- his tone of unquenchable hig-h spirits — "one doesn't die of it. No, one doesn't die, fortunately. Why, we're all more or less cracked, or broken — up here." He shook another laugh out, as he preceded us up the stone steps. Then he turned to stop for a moment to point his cane toward the small house with whose chimneys we were now on a level. " There, mesdames, there is the proof that mere breaking doesn't signify — in this matter of life and death. Tenez, madame — " and with a charm- ing gesture he laid his richly-veined, strong- old hand on my arm — a hand tliat ended in beautiful fingers, each with its rim of moon-shaped dirt ; " tenez — figure to yourself, madame, that I myself have been here twenty years, and I came for two ! I bought out the bonhomme who lived over yonder — I bought him and his furniture out. I said to myself, ' I'll buy it for eight hundred, and I'll sell it for four hundred, in a year.' " Here he laid his finger on his nose — lengthwise, the Norman in him supplanting the priest in his remembrance of a good bargain. " And now it is twenty years since then. Everything creaks and cracks over there ; all of us creak and crack. You should hear my chairs.. dies se cassent les reins — they break their thighs continually. Ah ! there goes another, I cry out, as I sit down in one in winter and hear them groan. Poor old things, they are of the Empire, no won- THREE NORMANDY INKS. 119 der they g:roau. You should see us, when our brethren eome to take a cup of soup with me. Such a collection of antiquities as we are! I catch them, my brothers, looking about, slyly peering- into the secrets of my little menage. 'From his ancestors, doubtless, these old chairs and tables,' say these good freres, under their breath. And then I wink slyly at the chairs, and they never let on." Again the mellow laugh broke forth. He stopped again to puff and blow a little, from his toil up the steep steps. Then all at once, as the rough music of his clicking sabots and the playful taps of his cane ceased, the laugh on his mobile lips melted into seriousness. He lifted his cane, point- ing to the cemetery just above us, and to the grave- stones looking down over the hillsides between a network of roses. " We are old, madame — we are old, but, alas ! we never die ! It is difficult to people, that cemetery. There are only sixty of us in the parish, and we die — we die hard. For example, here is my old servant" — and he covered a grave with a sweep of his cane — for we were leisurely sauntering through the little cemetery now. The grave to which he pointed was a garden ; heliotrope, myo- sotis, hare-bells and mignonette had made of the mound a bed of perfume—" see how quietly she lies— and yet what a restless soul the flowers cover ! She, too, died hard. It took her years to make up her mind : finally h hon Dku had to de- cide it for her, when she was eighty -four. She complained to the last — she was poor, she was in 120 THREE NORMANDT INNS. my way, she was blind. ' Eh hien, tu n'as pas besoin de me fairs les beaux yenx, toi' — I used to say to her. Ah, the good soul that she was ! " and the dark eye glistened with moisture. A moment later the cure was blowing- vig-orously the note of his grief, in trumpet-tones, through the organ that only a Frenchman can render an effective adjunct to moments of emotion. " You see, mes enfants, I am like that — I weep over my friends — when they are gone ! But see," he added quickly, recovering himself — " see, over yonder there is my predecessor's grave. He lies well, hein ? — comfortable, too— looking his old church in the face and the sun on his old bones all the blessed day. Soon, in a few years, he will have compam^ I, too, am to lie there, I and a friend." The humorous smile was again curving his lips, and the laughter-loving nostrils were be- ginning to quiver. " When my friend and I lie there, we shall be a little crowded, perhaps. I said to him, when he proposed it, proposed to lie there with us, ' but we shall be crunching each other's bones ! ' ' No,' he replied, ' only falling into each other's arms ! ' So it was settled. He comes over from Havre, every now and then, to talk our tombstones over; we di'ink a glass of wine to- gether, and take a pipe and talk about our future — in eternity ! Ah, how gay we are ! It is so good to be friends with God ! " The voice deepened into seriousness. He went on in a quieter key : " But why am I always preaching and talking about death and eternity to two such ladies — two THREE NORMANDY INNS. 121 such children ? Ah— I know, I am really old— I only deceive myself into pretending I'm young. You will do the same, both of you, some day. But come and see my good works. You know everyone has his little corner of conceit— I have mine. I like to do good, and then to boast of it. You shall see— you shall see." He was hurrying us along the narrow paths now, past the little company of grave-stones, graves that were bearing their barbaric burdens of mortuary wreaths, of beaded crosses, and the motley assemblage, common to all French grave- yards, of hideous shrines encasing tin saints and madonnas in plaster. Above the sunken graves and the tin effigies of the martyrs behind the church, arose a fair and glittering marble tomb. It was strangely out of keeping with the meagre and paltry surroundings of the peasant grave-stones. As we approached the tomb it grew in imposingness. It was a circu- lar mortuary chapel, with carved pediment and iron-wrought gateway. " It's fine, hein, and beautiful, hein ? It is the Duke's ! " The cure, it was easy to see, considered the chapel in the light of a personal possession. He stood before it, bare-headed, with a new earn- estness on his mobile face. "It is the Duke's. Yes, the Duke's. I saved his soul, blessed be God! and he— he rebuilds my cellars for me! See"— and he pointed to the fine new base of stone, freshly cemented, on which the church rested-" see, I save his soul, and he preserves my buildings for me. It's a fair deal, isn't it % How 122 THREE NOBMANDY INNS. does it come about, that he is converted ? Ah, you see, although I am a man without science, without knowledge, devoid of pretensions and learning, the good God sometimes makes use of such humble instrviments to work His will. It came about in the usual way. The Duke came here carrj'ing his religion lightl}^ as one may say, not thinking of his soul. I — I dine with him. We talk, we argue ; he does, that is — I only preach from my Bible. And behold ! one day he is con- verted. He is devout. And from gratitude, he repairs my crumbling old stones. And now see how solid, how strong is my church cellar! " Again the fountain of his irrepressible merriment bubbled forth. For all the gayety, however, the severe line deepened as one grew to know the face better ; the line in i^rofile running- from the nose into the firm upper lip and into the still more resolute chin, matched the impress of authority marked on the noble brow. It was the face of one who might have infinite charity and indulgence for a sin, and yet would make no compromise with it. We had resumed our walk. It led us at last into the interior of the little church. The gloom and silence within, after the dazzling- brilliancy of the noon-day sun and the noisy insect hum, invested the narrow nave and dim altar with an added charm. The old priest knelt for the briefest in- stant in reverence to the altar. When he turned there was surprise as well as a gentle reproach in the chang-eable eyes. " And you, mesdames ! How is this ? You are THREE NORMANDY INNS. 123 not Catholics ? And I was so sure of it ! Quite sure of it, you were so sympathetic, so full of rev- erence. And you, my child " — turning- to Charm — "you speak our tongue so well, with the very accent of a good Catholic. What ! you are Prot- estant ? La ! La ! What do I hear ? " He shook his cane over the backs of the straw-bottomed chairs; the sweet, mellow accents of his voice melted into loving protest — a jDrotest in which the fervor was not quenched in spite of the merry key in which it was pitched. " Protestants ! Pouffe ! pouflfe ! What is that ? What is it to be a Protestant "? Heretics, heretics, that is what you are. So you are clenx affreuses Mretiques ? Ah, la ! la ! Horrible ! horrible ! I must cure you of all that. I must cure you ! " He dropped his cane in the enthusiasm of his at- tack ; it fell with a clanging sound on the stone pavement. He let it lie. He had assumed, un- consciously, the orator's, the preacher's attitude. He crowded past the chairs, throwing back his head as he advanced, striking into argumentative gesture : " Tenez, listen, there is so little difference, after all. As I was saying to M. le comte de Chermont the other day, no later than Thursday— he has married an English wife, you know — can't under- stand that either, how they can marry English wives. However, that's none of my business~we have nothing to do with marrying, we priests, ex- cept as a sacrament for others. I said to M. le comte, who, you know, shows tendencies toward anglicism — astonishing the influence of women — 1 124 THREE NORMANDY INNS. said : * But, my dear M. le comte, why cliange ? You will only exchange certainty for uncertainty, facts for doubts, truth for lies.' ' Yes, yes,' the comte replied, ' but there are s6 many new truths introduced now into our blessed religion — the in- fallibility of the pope — the — ' ' Ah, mon cher comte — we m'en x>cirlez pas. If that is all that stands in your way— faites comme le hoii Dieu ! Lui — il ferine les yeux et tend les bras. That is all we ask — we his servants — to have you close your eyes and open your arms.' " The good cure was out of breath ; he was panting. After a moment, in a deeper tone, he went on : " You, too, my children, that is what I say to you — you need only to open your arms and to close your eyes. God is waiting for you." For a long instant there was a great stillness — a silence during which the narrow spaces of the dim aisles were vibrating with the echoes of the rich voice. The rustle of a light skirt sweeping the stone flooring broke the moment's silence. Charm was crossing the aisles. She paused before a little wooden box, nailed to the wall. There came sud- denly on the ear the sound of coin rattling down into the empty box ; she had emptied into it the contents of her purse. " For your poor, monsieur le cure," she smiled up, a little tremulously, into the burning, glowing eyes. The priest bent over the fair head, laying his hand, as if in benediction, upon it. " My poor need it sadly, my child, and I thank you for them. God will bless you." THREE NORMANDY INNS. 125 It was a toucliiiig" little scene, and I preferred, for ona, to look out just then at Henri's figure ad- vancing- toward us, up the stone steps. When ihf- priest spoke again, it was in a husky- tone, the gold in his voice dusted with moisture ; but the bantering spirits in him had reappeared. "What a pity, that 30U must burn! For you must — dreadful heretics that you are ! And this dear child, she seems to belong to us — I can never sit by, now, in Paradise, happj' and secure, and see her burn ! " The laugh that followed was a mingled caress and a blessing. Henri came in for a part of the indulgence of the good cure's smile as he came up the steps. " Ah, Henri, you have come for these ladies ? " " Old, monsieur le cure, luncheon is served." Our friend followed us to the topmost step, and to the very edge of the step. He stood there, talking down to us, as we continued to press him to return with us. " No, my children — no — no, I can't join you ; don't urge me; I can't, I must not. I must say my praj'ers instead; besides the children come soon, for their catechism. No, don't beg me, I don't need to be importuned; I know what that dear Kenard's wine is. Au revoir ef a hitntut — and remember," and here he lifted his arms — cane and all, high in the air — " all you need do is to close your eyes and to open your arms. God himself is doing the same." High up he stood, with uplifted hands, the smile irradiating a face that glowed with a saint's simplicity. Behind the black lines of his robe, 126 THREE NORMANDY INNS. the sunlight lay streaming- in noon glory ; it au- reoled him as never saint was aureoled by mortal brush. A moment only he lingered there, to raise his cap in parting salute. Then he turned, the trail of his gown sweeping the gravel paths, and presently the low church door swallowed him up. Through the door, as we crossed the road, there came out to us the click of sabots striking the rude flagging ; and a moment after, the murmur- ing echo of a deep, rich voice, saying the office oi the hour. CHAPTEB Xm. HONFLEUR — NEW AND OLD, The stillness of the park trees, as we passed beneath them, was like the pilence that comes after a blessing*. ?-', The sun, flooding- the land- ^ ~" scape with a deluge of light, lost something- of its effulgence, by contrast with the fulness of the priest's rich nature. This fair world of beauty that lay the other side of the terrace wall, be- neath which our luncheon was spread, was fair and lovely still — but how unim- laudscape seemed compared to the varied scenery of the cure's soul-lit character! Of all kinds of nature, human nature is assuredly the best; it is at least the most perdurably in- teresting. "^Tien we tire of it, when we weary of our fellow-man and turn the blase cheek on the fresh pillow of mother-earth, how quickly is the pillow deserted once the mental frame is rested or renewed ! The history of all human relations has the same ending— we all of us only fall out of love with man to fall as swiftly in again. portant th( 128 THREE NORMANDY INNS. The remainder of the afternoon passed with the rapidity common to all phases of enchant- ment. How could one eat seriously, with vulgar, glut- tonous hunger, of a feast spread on the parapet of a terrace-wall? The white foam of napkins, the mosaic of the 'patties, the white breasts of chicken, the salads in their bath of dew — these spoke the language of a lost cause. For there was an open- air concert going on in full swing, and the per- formance was one that made the act of eating seem as gross as the munching of apples at an oratorio— the music being, indeed, of a highly refined order of perfection. One's ears needed to be highly at- tuned to hear the pricking of the locusts in the leaves ; even the breeze kept uncommonly still, that the brushing of the humming-birds' and bees' wings against the flower-petals might be the more distinctly heard. I never knew which one of the party it Avas that decided we were to see the day out and the night in ; that we were to dine at the Cheval Blanc, on the Honfleur quays, instead of sedately breaking bread at the Mere Mouchard's. Even our steed needed very little urging to see the advantages of such a scheme. Henri alone wore a grim air of disapi)roval. His aspect was an epitome of rigid protest. As he took his seat in the cart, he held the sword between his legs with the air of one burning with a pent-up anguish of protest. His eye gloomed on the day ; his head was held aloft, reared on a column of bristling vertebrae, and on bis brow was written the sign of mutiny. THREE NORMANDY INNS. 129 " Henri— you think we should go back ; j'ou think going- on to Honlleur a mistake 1 " "Madame has said it"— Henri was a fatalist — in his speech, at least, he lived up to his creed. "Honlleur is far — Monsieur llenard has not the good digestion — when he is tired — he suffers. II passe des nuits d'angoisse. 11 soiiffre des fatigues de Vestomac. II se fatigue aujourd'lad ! " This, with an air of stern conviction, was accompanied by a glance at his master in which compassion was not the most obvious note to be read. He went on, remorselessly : " And, as madame knows, the work but begins for me when we are at home. There are the cos- tumes to be dusted and put away, the paint- brushes to clean, the dishes and lunch-basket to be attended to. As madame says, monsieur is some- times lacking in consideration. Mais, que voidez- vous ? le genie, c' est fait comme ga." Madame had not expressed the feeblest echo of a criticism on the composition of the genius in front ; but the short dialogue had helped, percep- tibly, to lift the weight of Henri's gloom ; he was beginning to accept the fate of the day with a phi- losopher's phlegm. Already he had readjusted a little difficulty between his feet and the lunch, basket, making his religious care of the latter com- patible with the open sin of improved personal comfort. Meanwhile the two on the front seat were a thousand miles away. Neither we, nor the day, nor the beauty of the drive had power to woo their glances from coming back to the focal point of in- 130 THREE NORMANDY INNS. terest they had found in each other. They were beg'inning' to talk, not about each other but of themselves — the danger-signal of all tete-a-tete adventures. When two young people have got into the per- sonal-pronoun stage of human intercourse, there is but one thing left for the unfortunate third in the party to do. Yes, now that I think of it, there are two roles to be played. The usual conception of the part is to turn marplot — to spoil and ruin the others' dialogue — to put an end to it, if possible, by legitimate or illegitimate means; a very suc- cessful way, I have observed, of prolonging, as a rule, such a duet indefinitely. The more enlight- ened actor in any such little human comedj% if he be gifted with insight, will collapse into the wings, and let the two young idiots have the whole stage to themselves. As like as not they'll weary of the play, and of themselves, if left alone. No harm will come of all the sentimental strutting and the romantic attitudinizing, other than view- ing the scene, later, in perspective, as a rather amusing bit of emotional farce. Besides being in the very height of the spring fashion, in the matter of the sentiments, these two were also busilj^ treading, at just this particular moment, the most alluring of all the paths lead- ing to what may be termed the outlying territo- rial domain of the emotions ; they were wandering through the land called Mutual Discovery. Now, this, I have always held, is among the most de- lectable of all the roads of life ; for it may lead one — anywhere or nowhere. THREE NORMANDY INNS. 131 Therefore it was from a purely generous impulse that I continued to look at the view. The sur- rounding's were, in truth, in conspiracy with the sentimentalists on the front seat; the extreme beauty of the road would have made any but senti- mental egotists oblivious to all else. The road was a continuation of the one we had followed in the morning's drive. Again, all the greenness of field and grass was braided, inextricably, into the blue of river and ocean. Above, as before, in that earlier morning drive, towered the giant aisles of the beaches and elms. Through those aisles the radiant Normandy landscape flowed again, as music from rich organ - piped throats flows through cathedral arches. Out yonder, on the Seine's wide mouth, the boats were balancing themselves, as if they also were half divided be- tween a doubt and a longing ; a freshening spurt of breeze filled their flapping sails, and away they sped, skipping through the waters with all the gayety which comes with the vigor of fresh reso- lutions. The light that fell over the land and waters was dazzling, and yet of an astonishing limpidity ; only a sun about to di'op and end his reign could be at once so brilliant and so tender — the difliised light had the sparkle of gold made soft by usage. Wherever the eye roved, it was fed as on a banquet of light and color. Nothing could be more exquisite, for depth of green swimming in a bath of shadow, than the meadows curled beneath the clifis ; nothing more tempting, to the painter's brush, than the arabesque of blossoms netted across the sk}^; and would you have the 132 THREE NORMANDY INNS. living- eye of nature, bristling- with animation, alive with winged sails, and steeped in the very soul of yellow sunshine, look out over the great sheet of the waters, and steep the senses in such a breadth of aqueous splendor as one sees only in one or two of the rare shows of earth. Then, all at once, all too soon, the great picture seemed to shrink ; the quivering pulsation of light and color gave way to staid, commonplace gar- dens. Instead of hawthorn hedges there was the stench of river smells — we were driving over cob- ble-paved streets and beneath rows of crooked, crumbling houses. A group of noisy street ur- chins greeted us in derision. And then we had no doubt whatsoever that we were alread}^ in Honfleur town. "Honfleur is an evil-smelling place," I remarked. " Oh, well, after all, the smells of antiquity are a part of the show ; we should refuse to believe in ancientness, all of us, I fancy, if mustiness wasn't served along with it." " How can any town have such a stench with all this river and water and verdure to sweeten it ? " I asked, with a woman's belief in the morality of environment — a belief much cherished by wives and mothers, I have noticed. " Wait till you see the inhabitants — they'll en- lighten you — the hags and the nautical gentle- men along the basins and quays. They've dis- covered the secret that if cleanliness is next to godliness, dirt and the devil are likewise near neighbors. Awful set — those Honfleur sailors The Havre and Seine people call them Chinamen, THREE NORMANDT INNS. 133 they are so unlike the rest of France and French- men." "Why are they so unlike ? " asked Charm. "They're so low down, so hideously wicked; they're like the old houses, a rotten, worm-eaten set — you'll see." Charm stopped him then, with a g-esture. She stopped the horse also ; she broug-ht the whole es- tablishment to a standstill ; and then she nod- ded her head briskly forward. We were in the midst of the Honfleur streets — streets that were running away from a wide open space, in all possible directions. In the centre of the square rose a curious, an altogether astonishing struct- ure. It was a tower, a belfry doubtless, a house, a shop, and a warehouse, all in one ; such a pictu- resque medley, in fact, as only modern irreverence, in its lawless disregard of original purpose and design, can produce. The low-timbered sub-base of the structure was pierced by a lovely doorway with sculptured lintel, and also with two imperti- nent modern windows, flaunting muslin curtains, and coquettishly attired with rows of flowering carnations. Beneath these windows was a shop. Above the whole rose, in beautiful symmetrical lines, a wooden belfry, tapering from a square tower into a delicately modelled spire. To com- plete and accentuate the note of the picturesque, the superstructure was held in its place by rude modern beams, propping the tower with a naive disregard of decorative embellishment. We knew it at once as the quaint and famous Belfry of St. Catherine. 134 THREE NORMANDY INNS. As we were about to turn away to descend the high street, a Norman maiden, with close- capped face, leaned over the carnations to look down upon us. " That's the daughter of the bell-ringer, doubt- less. Economical idea that," Renard remarked, taking his cap off to the smiling eyes. " Economical 1 " " Yes, can't you see ? Bell-ringer sends pretty daughter to window, just before vespers or ser- vice, and she rings in the worshippers ; no need to make the bells ring." " "What nonsense ! " — but we laughed as flatter- ingly as if his speech had been a genuine coin of wit. A turn down the street, and the famous Hon- fleur of the wharves and floating docks lay before us. About us, all at once, was the roar and hub- bub of an extraordinary bustle and excitement; all the life of the town, apparentlj^ was centred upon the quays. The latter were swarming with a tattered, ragged, bare- footed, bare-legged assem- blage of old women, of gamins, and sailors. The collection, as a collection, was one gifted with the talent of making itself heard. Everyone appeared to be shrieking, or yelling, or crying aloud, if only to keep the others in voice. Sailors lying on the flat parapets shouted hoarsely to their fellows in the rigging of the ships that lay tossing in the docks ; fishermen's families tossed their farewells above the hubbub to the captain-fathers launching their fishing-smacks ; one shrieking infant was be- ing passed, gayly, from the poop of a distant deck, THREE NORMANDY INNS. 135 across the closely lying- sliipping, to the quay's steps, to be hushed by the g-enerous opening of a peasant mother's bodice. One could hear the straining- of cordage, the creak of masts, the flap of the sails, all the noises peculiar to shipping riding- at anchor. The shriek of steam -whistles broke out, ever and anon, above all the din and uproar. Along the quay steps and the wharves there were con- stantly forming and re-forming groups of wretched, tattered human beings ; of men with bloated faces and a dull, sodden look, strikingly in contrast with the vivacity common among French people. Even the children and women had a depraved, shameless appearance, as if vice had robbed them of the last vestige of hope and ambition. Along the parapet a half-dozen di'unkards sprawled, asleep or dozing. At the legs of one a child was pulling, crying : " Viens — mere f haitra, eUe estsoule aussi." The sailors out yonder, busy in the rigging, and the men on the decks of the smart brigs and steamships, whistled and shouted and sang, as in- different to this picture of human misery and de- gradation as if they had no kinship with it. As a frame to the picture, Honfleur town laj^ be- neath the crown of its hills ; on the tops and sides of the latter, villa after villa shot through the trees, a curve of roof-line, with rows of daintily draped windows. At the right, close to the wharves, below the wooded heights, there loomed out a quaint and curious gateway flanked by two watch- towers, grim reminders of the Honfleur of the great days. And above and about the whole, en- compassing villa-crowded hills and closely packed 136 THREE NORMANDY INNS. streets, and the forest of masts trembling against the sky, there lay a heaven of spring and summer. Kenard had driven briskly up to a low, rambling fagade parallel with the quays. It was the " Che- val Blanc." A crowd assembled on the instant, as if appearing according to command. " Allons — n'encomhrez 2KIS ces dames!" cried a very smart individual, in striking contrast to the down-at-heel air of the hotel — a personage who took high-handed possession of us and our traps. " Will CCS dames desire a salon — there is tm vrai petit hijou empty just now," murmured a voice in a purring soprano, through the iron opening of the cashier's desk. Another voice was crying out to us, as we wound our way upward in pursuit of the jewel of a salon. "And the widow. La Veuve, shall she be dry or sweet ? " When we entered the low dining-room, a little later, we found that the artist as well as the epi- cure has been in active conspiracy to make the dinner complete; the choice of the table pro- claimed one accomplished in massing effects. The table was parallel with the low window, and through the latter was such a picture as one trav- els hundreds of miles to look upon, only to miss seeing it, as a rule. There was a great breadth of sky through the windows ; against the sky rose the mastheads ; and some red and brown sails cur- tained the space, bringing into relief the gray line of the sad-faced old houses fringing the shore- line. " Couldn't have chosen better if we'd tried, could THREE NORMANDY INNS. 137 we ? It's just the rig-lit hour, aud just the right kind of light. Those basins are unendurable^ sinks of iniquitous ugliness, unless the tide's in and there's a sunset going on. Just look — now ! Who cares whether Honfleur has been done to death by the tourist horde or not ? and been painted un- til one's art-stomach turns % I presume I ought to beg your pardon, but I can't stand the abomina- tion of modern repetitions ; the hand-organ busi- ness in art, I call it. But at this hour, at this time of the year, before this rattle-trap of an inn is as packed with Baedeker attachments as a Si- berian prison is with Nihilists — to run out here and look at these quays and basins, and old Hon- lleur lying here, beneath her green cliffs— well, short of Cairo, I don't know any better bit of color. Look out there, now ! See those sails, dripping with color, and that fellow up there, letting the sail down — there, splash it goes into the water, I knew it would; now tell me where will j'ou get better blues or yellows or browns, with just the right purples in the shore line, than you'll get here % " Benard was fairly started ; he had the bit of the born monologist between his teeth ; he stopped barely long enough to hear even an echoing as- sent. We were quite content ; we continued to sip our champagne and to feast our eyes. Mean- while Benard talked on. " Guide-books — what's the use of guide-books ? What do they teach you, anyway ? Open any one of the cursed clap -trap things. Yes, yes, I know I oughtn't to use vigorous language." 138 THREE NORMANDY INNS. "Do," bleated Charm, smiling- sweetly up at him. " Do, it makes you seem manly." Even Renard had to take time to laugh. " Thank you ! I'm not above making- use of any aids to create that illusion. Well, as I was saying-, what guide-book ever really helped anyone to see ? — that's what one travels for, I take it. Here, for instance, Murray or Baedeker would give you this sort of thing: 'Honfleur, an ancient town, with pier, beaches, three floating docks, and a good deal of trade in timber, cod, etc. ; exports large quantities of eggs to England.' Good heav- ens ! it makes one boil ! Do sane, reasonable mor- tals travel three thousand miles to read ancient history done up in modern binding, served up a la Murray, a la Baedeker ? " " Oh, you do them injustice, I think — the guides do go in for a little more of the picturesque than that " " And how — how do they do it ? This is the sort of thing they'll give you : ' Church of St. Catherine is large and remarkable, entirely of tim- ber and plaster, the largest of its kind in France.' Ah ! ha ! that's the picturesque with a vengeance. No, no, my friends, throw the guide-books into the river, pitch them overboard through the port- holes, along with the flowers, and letters to he read three days out, and the nasty novels people send you to make the crossing pleasant. And when you travel, really travel, mind, never make a plan — just go — go anywhere, whenever the impulse seizes you — and you may hope to get there, in the right way, possibly." THREE NORMANDY INNS. 139 Here Eenard stopped to finish his g-lass, drain- ing- the last drop of the yellow liquid. Then he went on : " To travel ! To start when an impulse seizes one ! To go — anywhere ! Why not ! It was for this, after all, that all of us have come our three thousand miles." Perhaps it was the restless toss- ing- of the shipping- out yonder in the basins that awoke an answering impatience within, in re- sponse to Kenard's outburst. Where did they g-o, those ships, and, u\) beyond this mouth of the Seine, how looked the shores, and what life lived itself out beneath the rustling poplars % Is it the mission of all flowing- water to create an unrest in men's minds ? Meanwhile, though the talk was not done, the dinner was long since eaten. We rose to take a glimpse of Honfleur and its famous old basin. The quays and the floating docks, in front of which we had been dining, are a part of the nine- teenth century ; the great ships ride in to them from the sea. But here, in this inner quadrangular dock, beside which we were soon standing, traced by Duquesne when Louis the Great discovered the maritime importance of Honfleur, we found still reminders of the old life. Here were the same old houses that, in the seventeenth century, up- right and brave in their brand new carvings, saw the high-decked, picturesquely painted Spanish and Portuguese ships ride in to dip their flag to the French fleur-de-lis. There are but few of the old streets left to crowd about the shipping life that still floats here, as in those bygone days of Honfleur pride; — when Havre was but a yellow 140 THREE NORMANDY INNS. strip of sand ; when the Honfleur merchants would have laughed to scorn any x>rophet's cry of warn- ing that one day that sand-bar opposite, despised, disregarded, boasting only a chapel and a tavern, would grow and grow, and would steal year by year and inch by inch bustling Honfleur's traffic, till none was left. In the old adventurous days, along with the Spanish ships came others, French trading and fishing vessels, with the salty crustations of long voyages on their hulls and masts. The wharves were alive then with fish-wives, whom Evelyn will tell you wore " useful habits made of goats' skin." The captains' daughters were in quaint Normandy costumes ; and the high-peaked coifs and the stiff woollen skirts, as well as the goat-skin coats, trembled as the women darted hither and thither among the sailors — whose high cries filled the air as they picked out mother and wife. Then were bronzed beards buried in the deeply -wrinkled old meres' faces, and young, strong arms clasped about maidens' waists. The whole town rang with gayety and with the mad joy of reunion. On the morrow, coiling its way up the steep hillsides, wound the long lines of the grateful company, one composed chiefly of the crews of these vessels happily come to port. The procession would mount up to the little church of Notre Dame de Grace perched on the hill overlooking the harbor. Some even— so deep was their joy at deliverance from shipwreck and so fervent their piety— crawled up, bare-footed, with bared head, wives and children following, weeping for joy, as the rude ex-votos THREE NORMANDY INNS. 141 were laid by the sailors' trembling hands at the feet of the Yirgin Lad3\ As reminders of this old life, what is left ? With- in the stone quadi'ang-le we found clustered a mot- ley fleet of wrecks and fishing-- vessels ; the nets, flung out to diy in the night air, hung like shrouds from the mastheads ; here and there a figure be- strode a deck, a rough shape, that seemed en- dowed with a double gift of life, so still and noiseless was the town. Around the silent dock, grouped in mysterious medley and confusion, were tottering roof lines, projecting eaves, narrow windows, all crazily tortured and out of shape. Here and there, beneath the broad beams of sup- port, a little interior, dimly lighted, showed a knot of sailors gathered, di'inking or lounging. Up high beneath a chimney perilousl}^ overlook- ing a rude facade, a quaint shape emerged, one as decrepit and forlorn of life and hope as the decaying houses it overlooked. Silence, pov- erty, wretchedness, the dregs of life, to this has Honfleur fallen. These old houses, in their slow decay, hiding in their dark bosom the gaunt se- crets of this poverty and human misery, seemed to be dancing a dance of drunken indifference. Some day the dance will end in a fall, and then the Honfleur of the past will not even boast of a ghost, as reminder of its days of splendor. An artist quicker than anyone else, I think, can be trusted to take one out of history and into the ■ picturesque. Renard refused to see anything but beauty in the decay about us ; for him the houses were at just the right drooping angle ; the roof 142 THRE'E NORMANDY INNS. lines were deliglitful in their irregularity ; and the fluttering- tremor of the nets, along- the rig- ging, was the very poetry of motion. " We'll finish the evening on the pier," he ex- claimed, suddenly ; " the moon will soon be up — we can sit it out there and see it begin to color things." The pier was more popular than the quaint old dock. It was crowded with promenaders, who, doubtless, were taking a bite of the sea-air. Through the dusk the tripping figures of gentle- men in white flannels and jaunty caps brushed the provincial Honfleur swells. Some gentle English voices told us some of the villa residents had come down to the pier, moved by the beauty of the night. Groups of sailors, with tanned faces and punctured ears hooped with gold rings, sat on the broad stone parapets, talking unintelli- gible Breton patois. The pier ran far out, almost to the Havre cliffs, it seemed to us, as we walked along in the dusk of the young night. The sky was slowly losing its soft flame. A tender, mel- low half light was stealing over the waters, mak- ing the town a rich mass of shade. Over the top of the low hills the moon shot out, a large, globular mass of beaten gold. At first it was only a part and portion of the universal lighting, of the still flushed sky, of the red and crimson harbor lights, of the dim twinkling of lamps and candles in the rude interiors along the shore. But slowly, tri- umphantly, the great lamp swung up ; it rose higher and higher into the soft summer sky, and as it mounted, sky and earth began to pale and fade. THREE NORMANDY INNS. 143 Soon there was only a silver world to look out upon — a wealth of quivering silver over the breast of the waters, and a deeper, richer gray on cliffs and roof tops. Out of this silver world came the sound of waters, lapping in soft cadence against the pier ; the rise and fall of sails, stirring in the night wind ; the tread of human footsteps moving in slow, measured beat, in unison with the rhythm of the waters. Just when the stars were scatter- ing their gold on the bosom of the sea-river, a voice rang out, a rich, full baritone. Quite near, two sailors were seated, with their arms about each other's shoulders. They also were looking at the moonlight, and one of them was singing to it: " Te sotiviens-tu. Mane, De notre enfance aux champs? • ••••« Te Rovviens-tu ? Le temps queje regrette C'est le temps qui n'est plus.^ DIVES: AN INN ON A HIGH-ROAD. CHAPTEK XIV. A COAST DRIVE. On our return to Villerville we found that the charm of the place, for us, was a broken one. AYe had seen the world ; the ef- fect of that experience was to produce the common result — there was a fine deposit of dis- content in the cup of our pleas- ure. Madame Fouchet had made use of our absence to settle our destiny; she had rented her villa. This was one of the bitter dregs. Another was to find that the life of the village seemed to pass us by ; it gave us to understand, with unflattering frankness, that for strangers who made no bargains for the season, it had little or no civility to squander. For the Yillerville beach, the inn, and the villas were crowded. Mere Mouchard was tossing omelettes from morn- ing till night ; even Augustine was far too hurried to pay her usual visit to the creamery. A detach- ment of Parisian costumes and be-ribboned nur- sery maids was crowding out the fish-wives and old hags from their stations on the low door-steps and the grasses on the cliffs. 148 THREE NORMANDY INNS. Even rouchet was no longer a familiar figure in the foreground of his garden ; his roses were bloom- ing now for the present owners of his villa. He and madame had betaken themselves to a box of a hut on the very outskirts of the village — a miser- able little hovel with two rooms and a bit of past- ure land being the substitute, as a dwelling, for the gay villa and its garden along the sea-cliifs. Pity, however, would have been entirely w^asted on the Fouchet household and their change of habitation. Tucked in, cramped, and uncomfortable beneath the low eaves of their cabin ceilings, they could now wear away the summer in blissful contentment : Were they not living on nothing — on less than nothing, in this dark pocket of a cliammere, while their fine house yonder was paying for itself hand- somely, week after week % The heart beats high, in a Norman breast, when the pocket bulges ; gold — that is better than bread to feel in one's hand. The whole village wore this triumphant expres- sion — now that the season was beginning. Paris had come down to them, at last, to be shorn of its strength ; angling for pennies in a Parisian pocket was better, far, than casting nets into the sea. There was also more contentment in such fishing — for true Norman wit. Only once did the village change its look of triumph to one of polite regret ; for though it was Norman, it was also French. It remembered, on the morning of our departure, that the civility of the farewell costs nothing, and like bread prodi- gally scattered on the waters, may perchance bring back a tenfold recompense. TntlEE NORMANDY INNS. 149 Even the morning" arose with a flattering- pallor. It was a g"ray clay. The low houses were like so many rows of pale faces ; the caps of the fish- wives, as they nodded a farewell, seemed to put the village in half-mourning-. " You will have a perfect day for your drive — there's nothing- better than these g-rays in the French landscape," E-enard was saying-, at our car- riag-e wheels ; " they bring- out every tone. And the sea is wonderful. Pity you're g"oing-. Grand day for the mussel-bed. However, I shall see you, I shall see you. Remember me to Monsieur Paul ; tell him to save me a bottle of his famous old wine. Good-by, g-ood-by." There was a shower of rose-leaves flung- out upon us : a great sweep of the now familiar beret ; a sonorous " Hui ! " from our driver, with an accom- paniment of vigorous whip-snapping, and we were off. The grayness of the closely-packed houses was soon exchanged for the farms lying beneath the elms. With the widening of the distance between our carriage-wheels and Yillerville, there was soon a great expanse of mouse-colored sky and the breath of a silver sea. The fields and foliage were softly brilliant ; when the light wind stirred the grain, the poppies and bluets were as vivid as flowers seen in dreams. It is easy to understand, I think, why French painters are so enamoured of their gray skies— such a background makes even the commonplace wear an air of importance. All the tones of the land- scape were astonishingly serious ; the features of 150 THREE NORMANDY INNS. the coast and the inland country were as signifi- cant as if they were meditating an outbreak into speech. It was the kind of day that bred reflec- tion ; one could put anything one liked into the picture with a certainty of its fitting the frame. We were putting a certain amount of regret into it ; for though Yillerville has seen us depart with civilized indiflference or the stolidity of the bar- barian — for they are one, we found our own attain- ments in the science of unfeelingness deficient ; to look down upon the village from the next hill top was like facing a lost joy. Once on the highroad, however, the life along the shore gave us little time for the futility of re- gret. Regret, at best, is a barren thing : like the mule, it is incapable of perpetuating its own mis- takes ; it appears to apologize, indeed, for its stu- pidity by making its exit as speedily as possible. With the next turn of the road we were in fitting condition to greet the wildest form of adventure. Pedlars' carts and the lumbering Normandy farm wagons were, at first, our chief companions along the roadway. Here and there a head would peep forth from a villa window, or a hand be stretched out into the air to see if any rain was falling from the moist sky. The farms were quieter than usual ; there was an air of patient waiting in the court- yards, among the blouses and standing cattle, as though both man and beast were there in attend- ance on the day and the weather, till the latter could come to the point of a final decision in re- gard to the rain. Finally, as we were nearing Trouville, the big THREE NORMANDY INNS. 151 drops fell. The grain-fields were soon bent double beneath the spasmodic shower. The poppies were di-enched, so were the cobble-paved courtyards; only the geese and the regiment of the ducks came abroad to revel in the downpour. The villas were hermetically sealed now — their summer finery was not made for a wetting. The landscape had no such reserves ; it gave itself up to the light summer shower as if it knew that its raiment, like Rachel's, when dampened the better to take her plastic out- lines, only gained in tone and loveliness the closer it fitted the recumbent figure of mother earth. Our coachman could never have been mistaken for any other than a good Norman. He was en- dowed with the gift of oratory peculiar to the country ; and his profanity was enriched with all the flavor of the provincial's elation in the com- mitting of sin. From the earliest moment of our starting, the stream of his talk had been unending. His vocabulary was such as to have excited the envy and despair of a French realist, impassioned in the pursuit of " the word." " }jui ;_^.r-r-r! "—This was the most common of his salutations to his horse. It was the Nor- man coachman's familiar apostrophe, impossible of imitation ; it was also one no Norman horse who respects himself moves an inch without first hear- ing. Chat Noir was a horse of purest Norman an- cestry ; his Percheron blood was as untainted as his intelligence was unclouded by having no mixtures of tongues with which to deal. His owner's ''Hid!" lifted him with arrowy light- ness to the top of a hill. The deeper " Bougre " 152 THREE NORMANDY INNS. steadied his nerve for a good mile of unbroken trotting. Any toil is pleasant in the gray of a cool morning, with a friend holding the reins who is a gifted monologist ; even imprecations, rightly administered, are only lively punctuations to really talented speech. " Come, my beauty, take in thy breath — courage ! The hill is before thee ! Curse thy withered legs, and is it thus thou stumbleth ? On — up with thee and that mountain of flesh thou carriest about with thee." And the mountain of flesh would be lifted — it was carried as lightly by the finely-feathered legs and the broad haunches as if the firm avoir- dupois were so much gossamer tissue. On and on the neat, strong hoofs rang their metallic click, clack along the smooth macadam. They had car- ried us past the farm-houses, the cliffs, the mead- ows, and the Norman-roofed manoirs buried in their apple-orchards. These same hoofs were now care- fully, dexterously picking their way down the steep hill that leads directly into the city of the Trouville villas. Presently, the hoofs came to a sudden halt, from sheer amazement. What was this order, this com- mand the quick Percheron hearing had overheard ? Not to go any farther into this summer city — not to go down to its sand-beach — not to wander through the labyrinth of its gay little streets ? — Verily, it is the fate of a good horse, how often ! to carry fools, and the destiny of intelligence to serve those deficient in mind and sense. The criticism on our choice of direction was an- nounced by the hoofs turning resignedly, with the THREE NORMANDY INNS. 153 patient assent of the fatigue tliat is bred of dis- gust, into one of the upper Trouville by-streets. Our coachman contented himself with a commiser- ating shrug and a prolonged flow of explanation. Perhaps ces dames, being strangers, did not know- that Trouville was now beginning its real season — its season of baths ? The Casino, in truth, was only opened a week since ; but we could hear the band even now playing above the noise of the waves. And behold, the villas were filling ; each day some grande dame came down to take posses- sion of her house by the sea. How could we hope to make a Frenchman com- prehend an instinctive impulse to turn our backs on the Trouville world ? AVhat, pray, had we just now to do with fashion — with the purring accents of boudoirs, with all the life we had run away from ? Surely the romance — the charm of our present experiences would be put to flight once we exchanged salutations with the heau monde — with that world that is so sceptical of any pleasure save that which blooms in its own hot-houses, and so disdainful of all forms of life save those that are modelled on fashion's types. We had fled from cities to escape all this ; were we, forsooth, to be pushed into the motley crowd of commonplace pleasure-seekers because of the scorn of a human creature, and the mute criticism of a beast that was hired to do the bidding of his betters ? The world of fashion was one to be looked oiTt upon as a part of the general mise -en-scene— as a bit of the universal decoration of this vast amiDhitheatre of the Normandy beaches. 154 THREE NORMANDY INNS. Chat noir had little reverence for philosophic reflections ; he turned a sharp corner just then ; he stopped short, directly in front of the broad windows of a confectioner's shop. This time he did not appeal in vain to the strangers with a barbarian's contempt for the great world. The brisk drive and the salt in the air were stimulants to appetite to be respected; it is not every day the palate has so fine an edge. " Du the, mesdames — a VAnglaise ? " a neatly- corsetted shape, in black, to set off a pair of daz- zling pink cheeks, shone out behind rows of apri- cot tarts. There was also a cap that conveyed to one, through the medium of pink bows, the ca- pacities of coquetry that lay in the depths of the rich brown eyes beneath them. The attractive shape emerged at once from behind the counter, to set chairs about the little table. We were bid- den to be seated with an air of smiling grace, one that invested the act with the emx^hasis of genu- ine hospitality. Soon a great clatter arose in the rear of the shop ; ojDinions and counter-opinions were being volubly exchanged in shrill French, as to whether the water should or should not come to a boil : also as to whether the leaves of oolong or of green should be chosen for our bev- erage. The cap fluttered in several times to ask, with exquisite politeness — a politeness which could not whollj^ veil the hidden anxiety — our o^Ti tastes and preferences. When the cap re- turned to the battling forces behind the screen, armed with the authoritj" of our confessed preju- dices, a new war of tongues arose. The fate of THREE NORMANDY INNS. 155 nations, trembling on the turn of a battle, might have been settled before that pot of water, so watched and guarded over, was brought to a boil. "When, finally, the little tea service was brought in, every detail was perfect in taste and appoint- ment, except the tea ; the faction that had held out valiantly, that the water should not boil, had prevailed, as the half-soaked tea-leaves float- ing on top of our full cups triumphantly pro- claimed. We sipped the beverage, agreeing Balzac had well named it ce boisson fade ef melancoUque ; the novelist's disdain being the better understood as we reflected he had doubtless only tasted it as concocted by French ineptitude. We were very merry over the liver-colored liquid, as we sipped it and quoted Balzac. But not for a moment had our merriment deceived the brown eyes and the fluttering cap-ribbons. A little drama of remorse was soon played for our benefit. It was she, her very self, the cap protested — as she pointed a tragic finger at the swelling, rounded line of her firm bodice — it was she who had insisted that the water should not boil ; there had been ladies — des vraies cmgJaises — here, only last summer, who would not that the water should boil, when their tea was made. And now, it apjiears that they were wrong, " c'etait jy^obahJement une fantaisie de la part de ces dames." Would we wait for an- other cup ? It would take but an instant, it was a little mistake, so easy to remedy. But this mis- take, like man^^ another, like crime, for instance, could never be remedied, we smilingly told her ; 156 THREE NORMANDY INNS. a smile that changed her solicitous remorse to a humorist's view of the situation. Another humorist, one accustomed to view the world from heights known as trapeze elevations, we met a little later on our way out of the narrow upper streets ; he was also looking down over Trouville. It was a motley figure in a Pierrot garb, with a smaller striped body, both in the stage pallor of their trade. These were somewhat start- ling objects to confront on a Normandy high-road. For clowns, however, taken by surprise, they were astonishingly civil. They passed their " honjour " to us and to the coachman as glibly as though ac- costing us from the commoner circus distance. " They have come to taste of the fresh air, they have," laconically remarked our driver, as his round Norman eyes ran over the muscled bodies of the two athletes. " I had a brother who was one — I had ; he was a famous one— rhe was ; he broke his neck once, when the net had been for- gotten. They all do it — ih se cassent le cou tons, tot ou tard ! Allons — toi — fas peiir, toi?" Chat noir's great back was quivering with fear ; he had no taste, himself, for shapes like these, spec- tral and wan as ghosts, walking about in the sun. He took us as far away as possible, and as quick- ly, from these reminders of the thing men call pleasure. We, meanwhile, were asking Pierre for a cer- tain promised chateau, one famous for its beauty, between Trouville and Cabourg. " It is here, madame — the chateau," he said, at last. THREE NORMANDY INNS. 157 Two lions couchant, seated on wide pedestals beneath a company of noble trees, were the only visible inhabitants of the dwelling-. There was a sweep of gardens ; ten-aces that picked their way daintily down the cliffs toward the sea, a mansard roof that covered a large mansion — these were the sole aspects of chateau life to keep the trees com- pany. In spite of Pierre's urgent insistance that the view was even more beautiful than the one from the hill, we refused to exchange our first ex- periences of the beauty of the prospect for a second which would be certain to invite criticism ; for it is ever the critic in us that plays the part of Blue- beard to our many-wived illusions. We passed between the hedgerows with not even a sigh of regret. We were presently rewarded by something better than an illusion — by reality, which, at its best, can afford to laugh at the spec- tral shadow of itself. Near the chateau there lived on, the remnant of a hamlet. It was a hamlet, ap- parently, that boasted only one farm-house : and the farm-house could show but a single haj-rick. Be- neath the sloping roof, modelled into shape by a pitchfork and whose symmetrical lines put Man- sard's clumsy creation yonder to the blush, sat an old couple— a man and a woman. Both were old, with the rounded backs of the laborer ; the woman's hand was lying in the man's open palm, while his free arm was clasped about her neck with all the tenderness of young love. Both of the old heads were laid back on the pillow made by the freshly-piled grasses. They had done a long day's work already, before the sun had reached its 158 THREE NORMANDY INNS. meridian; they were weary and resting- here be- fore they went back to their toil. This was better than the view ; it made life seem finer than nature ; how rich these two poor old things looked, with only their poverty about them ! Meanwhile Pierre had quickly changed the rural mise-efi-scene ; instead of pink hawthorn hedges we were in the midst of young forest trees. Why is it that a forest is alwaj^s a surprise in France 1 Is it that we have such a respect for French thrift, that a real forest seems a waste of timber ? There are forests and forests ; this one seemed almost a strip- ling in its tentative delicacy, compared to the ma- ture splendor of Fontainebleau, for example. This forest had the virility of a young savage ; it was neither dense nor vast ; yet, in contrast to the rib- bony grain-fields, and to the finish of the villa parks, was as refreshing to the eye as the right chord that strikes upon the ear after a succession of trills. In all this fair Normandj^^ sea-coast, with its won- derful inland contrasts, there was but one disap- pointing note. One looked in vain for the old Normandy costumes. The blouse and the close white cap — this is all that is left of the wondrous headgear, the short brilliant petticoats, the em- broidered stomacher, and the Caen and Koueu jeAv- els, abroad in the fields only a decade ago. Pierre shrugged his shoulders when asked a question concerning these now pre -historic cos- tumes. " Ah ! mademoiselle, you must see for yourself, that the peasant who doesn't despise himself dresses now in the fields as he would in Paris." THREE NORMANDY INNS. 159 As if in confirmation of Pierre's news of the fashions, there stepped forth from an avenue of trees, fringing a near farm-house, a wedding-party. The bride was in the traditional white of brides ; the little cortege following the trail of her white gown, was dressed in costumes modelled on Bon Marche styles. The coarse peasant faces flamed from bonnets more flowerj^ than the fields into which they were passing. The men seemed choked in their high collars ; the agony of new boots was written on faces not used to concealing such form of torture. Even the groom was sufier- ing ; his bliss was something the gay little bride hanging on his arm must take entirely for granted. It was enough greatness for the moment to wear broadcloth and a white vest in the face of men. " Laissez, laissez. Marguerite, it is clean here; it will look fine on the green ! " cried the bride to an improvised train-bearer, who had been holding up the white alpaca. Then the full splendor of the bridal skirt trailed across the freshly mo-oTi grasses. An irrepressible murmur of admiration welled up from the wedding guests ; even Pierre made part of the chorus. The bridegroom stopped to mop his face, and to look forth proudly, through start- ing ej'eballs, on the splendor of his possessions. "Ah! Lizette, thou art pretty like that, thou knowest. Faut t'emhrasser, tii sais." He gave her a kiss full on the lix)s. The little bride returned the kiss with unabashed fervor. Then she bui'st into a loud fit of laughter. " How silly you look, Jean, with your collar burst open." 160 THREE NORMANDY INNS. The groom's enthusiasm had been too much for his toilet ; the noon sun and the excitements of the marriage service had dealt hardly with his celluloid fastenings. All the wedding cortege rushed to the rescue. Pins, shouts of advice, j)ieces of twine, rubber fastenings, even knives, were offered to the now exploding bridegroom ; everyone was helping him repair the ravages of his moment of bliss ; everyone excepting the bride. She sat down upon her train and wept from pure raiiture of laughter. Pierre shook his head gravely, as he whipped up his steed. " Jean will repent it ; he'll lose worse things than a button, with Lizette. A woman who laughs like that on the threshold of marriage will cry before the cradle is rocked, and will make others weep. However, Jean won't be thinking of that — to-night." " TMiere are they going — along the highroad?" " Only a short distance. They turn in there," and he pointed with his whip to a near lane ; " they go to the farm-house now — for the wedding din- ner. Ah ! there'll be some heavy heads to-mor- row. For you know, a Norman peasant only really eats and drinks well twice in his life — when he marries himself and when his daughter mar- ries. Lizette's father is rich — the meat and the wines will be good to-night." Our coachman sighed, as if the thought of the excellence of the coming banquet had disturbed his own digestion. CHAPTEK XV. GUILLAUME-LE-CONQUEKANT. The wedding- party was lost in a thicket. Pierre g-ave his whip so resounding- a snap, it was no surprise to find ourselves rolling over the cobbles of a villag-e street. *' This is Dives, mesdames, this is the inn ! " Pierre drcAv up, as he spoke, before a long-, low fagade. Now, no one, I take it, in this world enjoys be- ing- duped. Surely disaj)pointment is only a civil term for the varying- deg-rees of fraud practised on the imagination. This inn, apparently, was to be classed among such frauds. It did not in the least, externally at least, fulfil Pienard's promises. He had told us to expect the marvellous and the mediaeval in their most approved period. Yet here we were, facing a featureless exterior ! The facade was built yesterday — that was writ large, all over the low, rambling structure. One end, it is true, had a gabled end ; there was also an old shrine niched in glass beneath the gable, and a low Norman gateway with rude letters carved over the arch. June was in its glory, and the barrenness of the commonplace structure was mercifully hidden by a wreath of pink and amber 162 THREE NORMANDY INNS. roses. But one scarcely di-ives twenty miles in the sun to look upon a facade of roses ! Chat noir, meanwhile, was becoming restless. Pierre had managed to keep his own patience well in hand. Now, however, he broke forth : " Shall we enter, my ladies ? " Pierre drove us straight into paradise ; for here, at last, within the courtyard, was the inn we had come to seek. A group of low-gabled buildings surrounded an open court. All of the buildings were timbered, the diagonal beams of oak so old they were black in the sun, and the snowy whiteness of fresh plas- ter made them seem blacker still. The gabled roofs were of varying tones and tints ; some were red, some mossy green, some as gray as the skin of a mouse ; all were deeply, jDlentifully fur- rowed with the washings of countless rains, and they were bearded with moss. There were out- side galleries, beginning somewhere and ending anywhere. There were open and covered outer stairways so laden with vines they could scarce totter to the low heights of the chamber doors on which they opened; and there were open sheds where huge farm-wagons were rolled close to the most modern of Parisian dog-carts. That not a note of contrast might be lacking, across the court- yard, in one of the windows beneath a stairway, there flashed the gleam of some rich stained glass, spots of color that were repeated, with quite a dif- ferent lustre, in the dappled haunches of rows of sturdy Percherons munching their meal in the adjacent stalls. Add to such an ensemble a va- THREE NORMANDY INNS. 163 grant multitude of rose, honeysuckle, clematis, and wistaria vines, all blooming- in full rivalry of jjerfume and color ; insert in some of the comers and beneath some of the older casements archseic bits of sculpture — strange barbaric features with beards of Assyrian correctness and forms clad in the rigid di-aperies of the early Jumieges period of the sculptor's art ; lance above the roof -ridges the quaint polychrome finials of the earlier Pa- lissy models ; and -crowd the rough cobble-paved courtyard with a rare and distinguished assem- blage of flamingoes, peacocks, herons, cockatoos swinging from gabled windows, and game-cocks that strut about in company with pink doves — and you have the famous inn of Guillaume le Con- querant ! Meanwhile an individual, with fine deep-gray eyes, and a face grave, yet kindly, over which a smile was humorously breaking, was patiently waiting at our carriage door. He could be no other than Monsieur Paul, owner and inn-keeper, also artist, sculptor, carver, restorer, to whom, in truth, this miracle of an inn owed its present per- fection and picturesqueness. " We have been long expecting you, mesdames," Monsieur Paul's grave voice was saying. " Mon- sieur Pienard had written to announce 3'our com- ing. You took the trouble to drive along the coast this fine day ? It is idyllically lovelj', is it not — under such a sun ? " Evidently the moment of enchantment was not to be broken by the worker of the spell. Mon- sieur Paul and his inn were one ; if one was a 164 THREE NORMANDY INNS. poem the other was a poet. The poet was also lined with the man of the practical moment. He had quickly summoned a host of serving-people to take charge of us and our lug-gage. " Lizette, show these ladies to the room of Madame de Sevigne. If they desire a sitting- room — to the Marmousets." The inn-keeper gave his commands in the quiet, well-bred tone of a man of the world, to a woman in peasant's dress. She led us past the open court to an inner one, where we were confronted with a building still older, apparently, than those grouped about the outer quadrangle. The peasant passed quickly beneath an overhanging gallery, draped in vines. She was next preceding us up a spiral turret stairway ; the adjacent walls were hung here and there with faded bits of tapestry. Once more she turned to lead us along an open gallery ; on this several rooms appeared to open. On each door a different sign was painted in rude Gothic letters. The first was " Chambre de 1' Ofiicier ; " the second, " Chambre du Cure," and the next was flung widely open. It was the room of the famous lady of the incomi^arable Letters. The room might have been left— in the yesterday of two centuries — by the lady whose name it bore. There was a beautiful Seventeenth century bedstead, a couple of wide arm-chairs, with down jjillows for seats, and a clothes press with the carvings and brass work pe- culiar to the epoch of Louis XIV. The chintz hangings and draperies were in keeping, being copies of the brocades of that day. There were por- traits in miniature of the courtiers and the ladies THREE NORMANDY INNS. 105 of the Great Eeig-n on the very ewers and basins. On the flounced dressing-table, with its antique g-lass and a diminutive patch-box, now the recep- tacle of Lubin's powder, a sprig of the lovel}^ Kose The was exhaling a faint, far-away century perfume. It was surely a stage set for a real comedy ; some of these high-coiffed ladies, who knows ? perhaps Madame de Sevigne herself would come to life,and give to the room the only thing it lacked — the liv- ing jjresence of that old world grace and speech. Presently, we sallied forth on a further voyage of discovery. We had reached the courtyard when Monsieur Paul crossed it ; it was to ask if, while waiting for the noon breakfast, we would care to see the kitchen ; it was, perhaps, different to those now commonly seen in modern taverns. The kitchen which was thus modestly described as unlike those of our own century might easily, except for the appetizing smell of the cooking fowls and the meats, have been put under lock and key and turned over to a care-taker as a full-fledged culinary museum of antiquities. One entire side of the crowded but orderly little room was taken up by a huge open fireplace. The logs resting on the great andirons were the trunks of fidl-grown trees. On two of the spits were long rows of fowl and legs of mutton roasting ; the great chains were being slowly turned by a chef in the paper cap of his profession. In deep burnished brass bowls lay water-cresses : in Caen dishes of an age to make a bric-a-brac collector turn green with envy, a Bear- naisp sauce was being beaten by another gallic mas- ter-hand. Along the beams hung old Piouen plates 166 THREE NORMANDY INNS. and platters ; in the numberless carved Normandy cupboards gleamed rare bits of Delft and Limoges : the walls may be said to have been hung with Nor- mandy brasses, each as burnished as a jewel. The floor was sanded and the tables had attained that satiny finish which comes only with long usage and tireless use of the brusli. There was also a shrine and a clock, the latter of antique Norman make and design. The smell of the roasting fowls and the herbs used by the maker of the sauces, a hungry palate found even more exciting than this most original of kitchens. There was a wine that went with the sauce ; this fact Monsieur Paul explained, on our sitting down to the noondaj^ meal ; one which, in remembrance of Monsieur Eenard's injunctions, he would suggest our tr3dng. He crossed the courtyard and disappeared into the bowels of the earth, beneath one of the inn buildings, to bring forth a bottle incrusted with laj^ers of moist dirt. This Sauterne was by some, Monsieur Paul smil- ingly explained, considered as among the real treasures of the inn. Both it and the sauce, we were enabled to assure him a moment later, had that golden softness which make French wines and French sauces at their best the rapture of the palate. In the courtj^ard, as our breakfast proceeded, a variety of incidents was happening. We were facing the open archway ; through it one looked out upon the high-road. A w^heelbarrow passed, trundled by a peasant-girl ; the barrow stopped, the girl leaving it for an instant to cross the court. THREE NORMANDY INNS. 167 " Bonjoiir, mere " " Bojyour, mafille — it goes well ? " a deep g-uttural voice responded, just outside of tlie window. " Justement — I came to tell you the mare has foaled and Jean will be late to-night." " Bien." "And Barbariue is still angry " " Make up with her, my child — anger is an evil bird to take to one's heart," the deep voice went on. " It is my mother," explained Monsieur Paul. " It is her favorite seat, out yonder, on the green bench in the courtyard. I call it her judge's bench," he smiled, indulgently^, as he went on. " She dispenses justice with more authority than any other magistrate in town. I am Mayor, as it happens, just now ; but madame my mother is far above me, in real power. She rules the town and the country about, for miles. Everyone comes to her sooner or later for counsel and command. You will soon see for j^ourselves." A murmur of assent from all the table accom- panied Monsieur Paul's prophecy. " Femme vraiment remarquable" hoarsely whis- pered a stout breakfaster, behind his napkin, be- tween two spoonsful of his soup. " Not two in a century like her," said my neigh- bor. " No — nor two in all France — non plus" retorted the stout man. " She could rule a kingdom— hey, Paul °l " " She rules me — as you see - and a man is harder to govern than a province, the}^ say," smiled Mon- 168 THREE NORMANDY INNS. sieur Paul with a humorous relish, obviously the offspring of experience. " In France, mesdames," he added, a sweeter look of feeling- coming into the deep eyes, " you see we are always children — toujours enfants—SiS long as the mother lives. We are never really old till she dies. May the good God preserve her ! " and he lifted his glass tow- ard the green bench. The table drank the toast, in silence. CHAPTEE XVI. THE GEEEN BENCH. In tlie course of the first few days we learned what all Dives had known for the past fifty years or so— that the focal point of interest in the inn was cen- tred in Madame Le Mois. She drew us, as she had the country around for miles, to circle close about her g-reen bench. The bench was placed at the best possible point for one who, between dawn and darkness, made it the business of her life to keep her eye on her world. Not the tiniest mouse nor the most spectral shade could enter or slij) away beneath the open archway without un- W^- 170 THREE NORMANDY INNS. dergoing inspection from tliat omniscient eye, that seemed never to blink nor to grow weary. This same eye could keep its watch, also, over the entire establishment, with no need of the huge body to which it was attached moving a hair's-breadth. Was it Nitouche, the head-cook, who was grum- bling because the kitchen-wench had not scoured the brass saucepans to the last point of mirrory brightness ? Behold both Nitouche and the trem bling peasant-girl, together with the brasses as evidence, all could be brought at an instant's call, into the open court. Were the maids— were Ma- rianne or Lizette neglecting their work to flirt wdth the coachmen in the sheds ^'^onder ? "Allans, mes files — doucement, la-has — et vos lits? qui les fait — les hons saints du paradis, peut-etre?" And Marianne and Lizette would slink away to the waiting beds. Nothing escaped this eye. If the 2)oule sultane was gone lame, limping in the inner quadrangle, madame's eye saw the trouble — a thorn in the left claw, before the feathered cripple had had time to reach her objective point, her mistress's capacious lap, and the healing touch of her skilful surgeon's fingers. Neither were the cockatoes nor the white parrots given license to make all the noise in the court-yard. When madame had an unusually loquacious moment, these more strictly professional conversationists were taught their place. " E'hen, toi — and thou wishest to proclaim to the world what a gymnast thou art— swinging on thy perch ■? Quietly, quietly, there are also others who wish to praise themselves ! And now, my THREE NORMANDY INNS. 171 child, you were telling- me how good you had been to your old g"randmother, and how she scolded you. Well, and how about obedience to our j)ar- ents, liein — how about that ? " This, as the old face bent to the maiden beside her. There was one, assuredly, who had not failed in his duty to his parents. Monsieur Paul's whole life, as we learned later, had been a willing- sacrifice to the unconscious t3a'anny of his moth- er's affection. The son was g-ifted with those g-ifts which, in a Parisian atelier, would easily have made him successful, if not famous. He had the artis- tic endowment in an unusual degree ; it was all one to him, whether he modelled in clay, or carved in wood, or stone, or built a house, or restored old bric-a-brac. He had inherited the old world round- ness of artistic ability — his was the plastic renas- cent touch that might have developed into that of a Giotto or a Benvenuto. It was such a sacrifice as this that he had lain at his mother's feet. Think you for an instant the clever, witty, canny woman in Madame Le Mois looked upon her son's renouncing the world of Paris, and holding to the g-lories of Dives and their famous inn in the light of a sacrifice ? " Parhleu ! " she would explode, when the subject was touched on, " it was a lucky thing for him that Paul had had an old mother to keep him from burning his fingers. Paris ! What did the provinces want with Paris ? Paris had need enough of them, the great, idle, shiftless, dis- sipated, cruel old city, that ground all their sons to powder, and then scattered their ashes abroad 172 THREE NORMANDY INNS. like so many cinders. Oh, yes, Paris couldn't get along without the provinces, to plunder 'and rob, to seduce their sons away from living good, pure lives, and to suck these lives as a pig would a trough of fresh water ! But the provinces, if they valued their souls, shunned Paris as they would the devil. And as for artists — when it came to the young of the provinces, who thought they could paint or model " Tenez, madame — this is what Paris does for our young. My neighbor yonder," and she pointed, as only Frenchwomen point, sticking her thumb into the air to designate a point back of her bench, "my neighbor had a son like Paul. He too was always niggling at something. He nig- gled so well a rich cousin sent him up to Paris. Well, in ten years he comes back, famous, rich, too, with a wife and even a child. The establish- ment is complete. AVell, they come here to break- fast one fine morning, with his mother, whom he put at a side table, with his nurse — he is ashamed of his mother, you see. Well, then his wife talks and I hear her. ' 3Ia{s, mon Charles, c'est tot qui est le plus fameux — il n'y a que toi ! Tu es un dieu, tu sais — il n'y a pas deux comme toi ! ' The fa- mous one deigns to smile then, and to eat of his breakfast. His digestion had gone wrong, it ap- jDears. The Figaro had placed his name second on a certain list, after a rival's ! He alone must be great — there must not be another god of painting save him ! He ! He ! that's fine, that's greatness —to lose one's appetite because another is praised, and to be ashamed of one's old mother ! " THREE NORMANDY INNS. 173 Madame Le Mois's face, for a moment, was terri- ble to look upon. Even in her kiDclliest moments hers was a severe countenance, in spite of the true Norman curves in mouth and nostril — the laugh- ter-loving" curves. Presently, however, the fierce- ness of her severity melted ; she had caught sight of her son. He was passing her, now, with the wine bottles for dinner i^iled up in his arms. " You see," croaked the mother, in an exultant whisper, " I've saved him from all that — he's hap- py, for he still works. In the winter he can amuse himself, when he likes, with his carving and paint- brushes. Ah, Hens, du monde qui arrive ! " And the old woman seated herself, with an air of great dignity, to receive the new-comers. The world that came in under the low archway was of an altogether different character from any we had as yet seen. In a satin-lined victoria, amid the cushions, lay a young and lovely-eyed Anonyma. Seated beside her was a weak-featured man, with a huge flower decorating his coat lappel. This lat- ter individual divided the seat with an army of small dogs who leaped forth as the carriage stopped. Madame Le Mois remained immovable on her bench. Her face was as enigmatic as her voice, as it gave Suzette the order to show the lady to the salon bleu. The high Louis XY. slipper, as it picked its way carefully after Suzette, never seemed more distinctly astray than when its fair wearer confided her safety to the insecure footing of the rough, uneven cobbles. In a brief half -hour the frou-frou of her silken skirts was once more 174 THREE NORMANDY INNS. sweeping tlie court-yard. She and her companion and the dogs chose the open air and a tent of sky for their banqueting - haU. Soon all were seated at one of the many tables placed near the kitchen, beneath the rose-vines. Madame gave the pair a keen, dissecting glance. Her verdict was delivered more in the emphasis of her shrug and the humor of her broad wink than in the loud- whispered — " Comme vous voyez, chere dame, cle toutes sortes ici, chez nous — mais — toujours hon genre ! " The laughter of one who could not choose her world was stopped, suddenly, by the dipping of the thick fingers into an old snuff-box. That verj'' afternoon the court-yard saw another arrival ; this one was treated in quite a different spirit. A dog-cart was briskly driven into the yard by a gentleman who did not appear to be in the best of humor. He drew his horse up with a sudden fierceness ; he as fiercely called out for the hostler. Monsieur Paul bit his lip ; but he composedly confronted the disturbed countenance perched on the driver's seat. The gentleman wished " I want indemnity — that is what I want. In- demnity for m}^ horse," cried out a thick, coarse voice, with insolent authority. " For your horse ? I do not think I under- stand " " O — h, I presume not," retorted the man, still more insolently ; " people don't usually understand when they have to pay. I came here a week ago, and stayed two days ; and you starved my horse — and he died — that is what happened — he died!" THREE NORMANDY INNS. 175 The whole court-yaixl now rang with the cries of the assembled household. The high, angry tones had called together the last serving-man and scul- lery-maid; the cooks had come out from their kitchens; they were brandishing their long-han- dled saucepans. The peasant-women were shriek- ing in concert with the hostlers, who were raising their arms to heaven in proof of their innocence. Dogs, cats, cockatoes swinging on their perches, peacocks, parrots, pelicans, and every one of the cocks swarmed from the barnyards and garden and cellars, to add their shrill cries and shrieks to the universal babel. Meanwhile, calm and unruffled as a Hindoo god- dess, and strikingly similar in general massiveness of structure and proportion to the common repro- duction of such deities, sat Madame Le Mois. She went on with her usual occupation ; she was dipping fresh-cut salad leaves into great bowls of water as quietly as if only her own little family Were assembled before her. Once only she lifted her heavily-moulded, sagacious eyebrow at the irate dog-cart diiver, as if to measure his pitiful strength. She allowed the fellow, however, to touch the point of abuse before she crushed him. Her first sentence reduced him to the ignominy of silence. All her people were also silent. AVhat, the deep sarcastic voice chanted on the still air — what, this gentleman's horse had died— and yet he had waited a whole week to tell them of the great news ? He was, of a truth, altogether too considerate. His own memory, perhaps, was also a short one, since it told him nothing of the con- 176 THREE NORMANDY INNS. dition in whicli the poor beast had arrived, drop- ping with fatigue, wet with sweat, his mouth all blood, and an eye as of one who already was past the consciousness of his suffering % Ah no, mon- sieur should go to those who also had short mem- ories. " For we use our eyes — we do. We are used to deal with gentlemen — with Christians " (the He- brew nose of the owner of the dead horse, even more plainly abused the privilege of its pedigree in proving its race, by turning downward, at this onslaught of the mere's satire), " as I said, with Christians," continued the mere, pitilessly. " And do those gentlemen complain and put upon us the death of their horses ? No, my fine sir, they re- turn — Us reviennent, et sont revenus depuis la Con- quete ! " With this fine climax madame announced the court as closed. She bowed disdainfully, with a grand and magisterial air, to the defeated claim- ant, who crept away, sulkily, through the low archway. " That is the way to deal with such vermin, Paul ; whip them, and they turn tail." And the mere shook out a great laugh from her broad bosom, as she regaled her wide nostrils with a fresh pinch of snuff. The assembled household echoed the laugh, seasoning it with the glee of scorn, as each went to his allotted place. CHAPTEK XVII. THE WOELD THAT CAJVEE TO DIVES. It was a world of many mixtures, of various ranks and liabits of life that found its way under the old archway, and sat down at the table d'hote breakfasts and dinners. Madame and her gifted pmmm^ . ,v?4^m.ft son were far too clever ' to attempt to play the V . ,^ mistaken part of Provi- dence; there was no pointed assortment made of the sheep and the goats ; at least, not in a way to suggest the most remote intention of any such separation being pre- meditated. Such separation as there was came about in the most natural and in the pleasantest possible fashion. When Petit jean, the pedler, and his wife drove in under the Gothic sign, the huge lumbering A-ehicle was as quickly surrounded as when any of the neighboring notabilities arrived in emblazoned chariots. Madame was the first to waddle forward, nodding up toward the open hood as, with a short, brisk, business " Bonjour," she wel- comed the head of Petit jean and his sharp-eyed spouse looking over the aprons. 178 THREE NORMANDY INNS. The pedler is always popular with his world -, and Dives knew Petit jean to be as honest as a pedler can ever hope to be in a world where small pence are only made large by some one being sac- rificed on the altar of duplicity. Therefore it was that Petit jean's hearse-like cart was always a wel- come visitor ; — one could at least be as sure of a just return for one's money in trading with a ped- ler as from any other source in this thieving world. In the end, one always got something else besides the bargain to carry away with one. For Petit jean knew all the gossip of the province ; after dinner, when the stiff cider was working in his veins, he would be certain to tell all one wanted to know. Even Madame Le Mois, whose days were too busy in summer to include the daily reading of her newspaper, had grown dependent, in these her later years, on such sources of information as the pedler's garrulous tongue supplied. In the end she had found his talent for fiction quite as reliable as that of the journalists, besides being infinitely more entertaining, abounding in person- alities which were the more racy, as the pedler felt himself to be exempt from that curse of responsi- bility, which, in French journalism, is so often a barrier to the full play of one's talent. Therefore it was that Petitjean and his bright- eyed spouse were always made welcome at Dives. " It goes well, Madame Jean ? Ah, there you are. Well, hein, also 1 It is long since we saw you." " Ah, madame, centuries, it is centuries since we were here. But what will you have ? with the bad THREE NORLAND T INNS. 179- season, the rains, the banks failing, the — but you, madame, are well ? And Monsieur Paul ? " "All, r,a va tout doiicenient — Paul is well, the good God be praised, but I — I perish day by day " At which the entire court-yard was certain to burst into laughing- jDrotest. For the whole house- hold of (jruillaume le Conquerant was quite siu'e to be assembled about the great wheels of the ped- ler's wagon — only to look, not to bu}', not yet. Petit jean and his wife had not dined yet, and a pedler's hunger is something to be resjDected — one made money by waiting for the hour of digestion. The little crowd of maids, hostlers, cooks, and scullery wenches, were only here to whet their ap- petite, and to greet Petit jean. Nitouche, the head chef, put a little extra garlic in his sauces that day. But in sj)ite of this compliment to their palate, the pedler and his wife dined in the smaller room off the kitchen ; — Madame was desolated, but the sciUe- d-manger was crowded just now. One was really suffocated in there these days ! Therefore it was that the two ate the herbaceous sauces with an extra relish, as those conscious of having a larger space for the play of vagrant elbows than their less fortunate brethren. The gossip and trading came later. On the edge of the fading dajdight there was still time to see ; the chosen articles could easily be taken into the brightly lit kitchen to be passed before the lamps. After the buj'ing and bargain- ing came the talking. All the household could find time to spend the evening on the old benches ; these latter lined the sidewalk just beneath the low 180 THREE NORMANDY INNS. kitclien casements. They had been here for many a long- year. AVhat a history of Dives these old benches could have told ! What troopers, and beggars, and cowled monks, and wayfarers had sat there ! — each sitter helping to wear away the wood till it had come to have the depressions of a drinking-trough. Night after night in the long centuries, as the dark- ness fell upon the hamlet — what tales and con- fidences, and what murmured anguish of remorse, what cries for help, what gay talk and light song must have welled up into the dome of sky ! Once, as we sat within the court-yard, under the stars, a young voice sang out. It was so still and quiet every word the youth phrased was as clear as his fresh young voice. " Tiejis — it is Mathieu — he is singing Les Oreil- lers I " cried Monsieur Paul, with an accent of pride in his own tone. The young- voice sang on : " J^ arrive en ce pays De Basse Normandie, Vous dire une chanson, SHI plait la compagnie ! " " It is an old Norman bridal song," Monsieur Paul went on, lowering his voice. " One I taught a lot of young boys and lads last winter — for a wedding held here — in the inn." Still the fresh notes filled the air : " Les amours sont partis Dans un bateau de verre ; Le bateau a casse a casse — Les amours sont jJarteiTe." THREE NORMANDY INNS. 1^1 "How tlie old women lang-bed— and cried — at once ! It was years since they had heard it — the old song-. And when these boys — their sons and g-randsons — sang- it, and I had trained them well^ they wept for pure delight." Again the song went on : " Ouvrez la ports, ouvrez ! Nouvelle mariee, Car si vous ne Vortvrez Vous serez accnsee." " I dressed all the young girls in old costumes/' our friend continued, still in a whisper. " I ran- sacked all the old chests and closets about here. I got the ladies of the chateaux near by to aid me ; they were so interested that many came down from Paris to see the wedding. It was a pretty sight, each in a different dress! Every century since the thirteenth was represented." " Attendez a demain. La fr Cliche matinee, Quand mon oiseau prive A ura pris sa voice / " Clear, strong, free rang the young tenor's voice — and then it broke into " Comment — tu dis que Claire est Id ? " whereat Monsieur Paul smiled. " That will be the next wedding— what shall I devise for that ? That will also be the ending of a long lawsuit. But he should have sung the last verse— the prettiest of all. Mathieu ! " Paul lifted his voice, calling into the dark. 182 THREE NORMANDY INNS. "Oui, Monsieur Paul ! " " Sing- us the last verse " " Dans sejnrdin du Roi A pris sa reposee, Cueillant le romariii La — vande — houtun — nee " The last notes were but faint vibrations, coming' from a leng'thening" distance. " Ah ! " and Monsieur Paul breathed a sigh. " They don't care about singing. They are doing it all the time — they are so much in love. The fathers' lawsuit ended only last month. They've waited three years — happy Claire — happy Ma thieu I " CHAPTEK XVin. THE CONYEESATION OF PATRIOTS. The world that found its way to the mayor's table at this early , j)eriod of the summer season was largely composed of the class that travels chiefly to amuse others. The commer- cial gentlemen in France, how- ever, have the outward bearing- of those who travel to amuse themselves. The selling of other people's goods— it is surely as good an excuse as any other for seeing the world ! Such an occupation offers an orator, one gifted in conversational talents— talents it would be a pity to see buried in the domestic napkin — a fine arena for display. The French commercial traveller is indeed a genus apart ; he makes a fetich of his trade ; he preaches his propaganda. The fat and the lean, the tall and the little, the well or meanly dressed representatives of the great French houses who sat dowTi to dine, as our neighbors or vis-a-vis, night after night, were, on the whole, a great credit to their country. Their manners might have been mistaken for those of a higher rank; their gifts 184 THREE NORMANDY INNS. as talkers were of sucli an order as to make listen- ing the better part of discretion. Dining- is always a serions act in France. At this inn the sauces of the clief, Avith their reputa- tion behind them, and the proof of their real ex- cellence before one, the dinner-hour was elevated to the importance of a ceremony. How the petty merchants and the commercial gentlemen ate, at first in silence, as if respecting the appeal im- posed by a great hunger, and then warming into talk as the acid cider was passed again and again ! What crunching of the sturdy, dark-colored bread between the great knuckles ! "WTiat huge helps of the famous sauces ! What insatiable appetites ! What nice appreciation of the right touch of the tricksy garlic ! What nodding of heads, clinking of glasses, and warmth of friendship established over the wine-cups! At dessert everyone talked at once. On one occasion the subject of Gam- be tta's death was touched on ; all the table, as one man, broke out into an effervescence of political babble. " What a loss ! What a death-blow to France was his death ! " exclaimed a heavy young man in a pink cravat. "If Gambetta had lived, Alsace and Lorraine would be ours now, without the firing of a gun ! "' added an elderly merchant at the foot of the table. " Ah--h ! without the firing of a gun they will come to us yet. I tell you, without the firing of a gun — unless we insist on a battle," explosively re- joined a fiery -hued little man sitting next to Mon- sieur Paul ; " but you will see — we shall insist THREE NORMANDY INNS. 185 There is between us and Germany an inextin- guishable hate — and we must kill, kill, right and left ! " " Allons — allons ! " protested the table, in chorus. "Yes, yes, a general massacre, that is what we want ; that is what we must have. Men, women, and children — all must fall. I am a married man — but not a woman or a child shall escape — when the time comes," continiied the fiery-eyed man, getting more and more ferocious as he warmed with the thought of his revenge. " Wliat a monster ! " broke in Madame Le Mois, her deei? base notes unruffled by the spectacle of her bloodthirsty neighbor's violence ; " you — to bayonet a woman with a child in her arms ! " "I would — I would " " Then you would be more cruel than they were. They treated our women with respect." There was a murmur of assenting applause, at this sentiment of justice, from the table. But the fiery-eyed man was not to be put down. " Oh, yes, they were generous enough in '71, but I should remember their insults of 1815 ! " " Ancienne liistoire — pa," said the mere, dismiss- ing the subject, with a humorous wink at the table. "As you see," was Monsieur Paul's comment on the conversation, as we were taking our after- dinner stroll in the garden — "as you see, that sort of person is the bad element in our country — the dangerous element — unreasoning, revengeful, and ignorant. It is such men as he who still up- hold hatreds and keep the flame alive. It is 186 THREE NORMANDY INNS. better to have no talent at all for politics — to be harmless like me, for instance, whose worst vice is to buy up old laces and carvings." " And roses " " Yes — that is another of my vices — to perpetu- ate the old varieties. They call me along our coast — the millionnaire — of roses ! Will you have a ' Marie Louise,' mademoiselle ? " The garden was as complete in its old-time aspect as the rest of the inn belongings. Only the older, rarer varieties of flowers and rose-stalks had been chosen to bloom within the beautifully arranged inclosure. Citronnelle, purple irises, fringed asters, sage, lavender, rose-2)eche, bachelor's-button, fJie d'Horace, and the wonderful electric fraxinelle, these and many other shrubs and plants of the older centuries were massed here with the taste of one diflicult to please in horticultural arrange- ments. Our after-dinner walks became an event in our day. At that hour the press of the day's work was over, and Madame Mere or Monsieur Paul were always ready to join us for a stroll. " For myself, I do not like large gardens," Mon- sieur Paul remarked, during one of these after- dinner saunters. " The monks, in the old days, knew just the right size a garden should be — small and sheltered, with walls — like a strong arm about a pretty woman — to protect the shrubs and flowers. One should enter the garden, also, by a gate which must click as it closes — the click tickles the imagination— ^it is the sound hence- forth connected with silence, with perfumes and seclusion. How far away we seem now, do we THREE NORMANDY INNS. 187 not ! — from the bustle of the inn court-yard — and yet I could throw a stone into it." The only saunterers besides ourselves were the flamingo, who, cautiously, timorously picked his way — as if he were conscious he was only a bunch of feathers hoisted on stilts ; the white parrot, who was wabbling- across the lawn to a favorite perch in the leaves of a tropical palm ; and the peacock, whose train had been spread with a due regard to effect across a bed of j)urple irises, with a view to annihilating the brilliancy of their rival hues. The bit of sky framed by these four garden walls always seemed more delicate in tone than that which covered the open court-yard. The birds in the bushes had moments of melodious outbursts they did not, apparently, indulge in along the high-road. And what with the fading lights, the stars pricking their way among the palms, the scents of flowers, and the talk of a poet, it is little wonder that this twilight hour in the old garden was certain to be the most lyrical of the twenty-four. CHAPTEK XIX. IN LA CHAMBEE DES MARMOUSETS. "^ « jrp j^g i]^Q -^dnters, mesdames, that are hard to bear. The}' are long — they are dull. No one passes along- the high-road. It is then, when sometimes the snow is piled knee- deep in the court-yard, it is then I try to amuse myself a little. Last year I did the Jvimieges sculptures ; they fit in well, do they not ? " It was raining ; and Monsieur Paul was paying us an evening call. A great fire was burning in the beautiful Francois I. fireplace of our sitting- room, the famous Chambre des Marmousets. We had not consented that any of the lights should be lit, although the lovely little Louis XIV. chandelier and the antique brass sconces were temptingly filled with fresh candles. The flames of the great logs would sufi'er no rival illumina- tions ; if the trunks of full-grown trees could not suffice to light up an old room, with low-raftered ceilings, and a mass of bric-a-brac, what could a few thin waxen candles hope to do ? On many other occasions we had thought our marvellous sitting-room had had exceptional mo- THREE NORMANDY INNS. 189 ments of beauty. To turn in from the sunlit, oi^en court -yard ; to pass beneath the vine-hung- gallery ; to lift the g-reat latch of the low Gothic door and to enter the rich and sumptuous inte- rior, Avhere the light came, as in cathedral aisles, only through the jewels of fourteenth - century glass ; to close the door ; to sit beneath the pris- matic shower, ensconced in a nest of old tapestried cushions, and to let the eye wander over the wealth of carvings, of ceramics, of Spanish and Normandy trousseaux chests, on the collection of antique chairs, Dutch porcelains, and priceless em- broideries — all the riches of a museum in a living- room — such a moment in the Marmousets we had tested again and again with delectable results. At twilight, also, when the garden was submerged in dew, this old seigneurial chamber was a re- treat fit for a sybarite or a modern aesthete. The stillness, the soft luxurious cushions, the rich dusk thickening in the corners, the complete isolation of the old room from the noise and tumult of the inn life, its curious, its delightful unmodernness, made this Marmouset room an ideal setting for any mediaeval picture. Even a sentiment tinct- ured with modern cynicism would, I think, have borrowed a little antique fervor, if, like the pho- tographic negative our nineteenth-century emo- tionalism somewhat too closely resembles, in its colorless indefiniteness, the sentiment were sufii- ciently exposed, in point of time and degree of sensitiveness, to the charm of these old surround- ings. On this particular evening, however, the patter- 190 THREE NORMANDY INNS. ing of the rain without on the cobbles and the great blaze of the fire within, made the old room seem more beautiful than we had yet seen it. Perhaps the capture of our host as a guest was the added treasure needed to complete our collec- tion. Monsieur Paul himself was in a mood of prodigal liberality ; he was, as he himself neatly termed the phrase, ripe for confession ; not a se- cret should esca^De revelation ; all the inn mys- teries should 3^ield up the fiction of their frauds ; the full nakedness of fact should be given to us. " You see, cheres dames, it is not so difiicult to create the beautiful, if one has a little taste and great patience. My inn — it has become my hobby, my pride, my wife, mj^ children. Some men marry their art, I esjooused my inn. I found her poor, tattered, broken-down in health, if you will ; verily, as your Shakespeare says of some country wench : ' a poor thing but mine own.' " Monsieur Paul's possession of the English lan- guage was scarcely as complete as the storehouse of his memory. He would have been surprised, doubtless, to learn he had called poor Audrey, " a pure ting, buttaire my noon ! " " She was, however," he continued, securely, in his own richer Norman, " though a wench, a beau- tiful one. And I vowed to make her glorious. ' She shall be famous,' I vowed, and — and — bet- ter than most men I have kept my vow. All France now has heard of Guillaume le Conque- ant!" The pride Monsieur Paul took in his inn was indeed a fine thing to see. The years of toil he THREE NORMANDY INNS. 191 had spent on its walls and in its embellishment had brought him the recompense much giving always brings ; it had enriched him quite as much as the wealth of his taste and talent had bequeathed to the inn. Latterly, he said, he had travelled much, his collection of curios and antiq- uities having called him farther afield than many Frenchmen care to wander. His love of Delft had taken him to Holland ; his passion for Span- ish leather to the country of Velasquez ; he must have a Virgin, a genuine fifteenth-century Virgin, all his own ; behold her there, in her stifif wooden skirts, a Neapolitan captive. The brass braziers yonder, at which the courtiers of the Henris had warmed their feet, stamping the night out in cold ante-chambers, had been secured at Blois ; and his collection of tapestries, of stained glass, of Normandy brasses, and Breton carvings had made his own coast as familiar as the Dives streets. " The priests who sold me these, madame," he went on, as he picked up a priest's chasuble, now doing duty as a table covering " would sell their fathers and their mothers. It is all a question of price." After a review of the cimos came the history of the human collection of antiquities who had peo- pled the inn and this old room. Many and various had been the visitors who had slept and dined here and gone forth on their travels along the high-road. The inn had had a noble origin ; it had been built by no less a personage than the great Will- iam himself. He had deemed the spot a fitting 192 TUREE NORMANDY INNS. one in which to build his boats to start forth foi his modest iDroject of conquering- England. He could watch their construction in the waters of Dives Eiver — that flows still, out yonder, among the g-rasses of the sea-meadows. For some years the Norman dukes held to the inn, in memory of the success of that clever boat-building-. Then for five centuries the inn became a manoir — the seigneurial residence of a certain Sieur de Sem- illy. It was his arms we saw yonder, joined to those of Savoy, in the door panel, one of the family having" married into a branch of that great house. Of the famous ones of the world who had trav- elled along this Caen post-road and stopped the night here, humanly tired, like any other humble wayfarer, was a hurried visit from that king who loved his trade — Louis XI. He and his suite crowded into the low rooms, grateful for a bed and a fire, after the weary pilgrimage to the heights of Mont St. Michel. Louis's piety, how- ever, was not as lasting in its physically exhaust- ive effects, as were the fleshly excesses of a certain other king — one Henri IV., whose over-ap- preciation of the oysters served him here, caused a royal attack of colic, as you may read at your pleasure in the State Archives in Paris — since, quite rightly, the royal secretary must write the court physician every detail of so important an event. What with these kingly travellers and such modern uncrowned kings as Puvis de Cha- vannes, Dumas, George Sand, Daubigny, and Troy- on, together with a goodly number of lesser great THREE NORMANDY INNS. 193 ones, the famous little inn has had no reason to feel itself slighted by the great of any century. Of all this motley company of notabilities there were two whose visits seemed to have been in- definitely prolonged. There was nothing, in this present flowery, picturesque assemblage of build- ings, to suggest a certain wild di-ama enacted here centuries ago. Nothing either in yonder tender sky, nor in the silvery foliage on a fair day, which should conjure up the image of William as he must have stood again and again beside the little river; nor of the fury of his impatience as the boats were building all too slowly for his hot hopes ; nor of the strange and motley crew he had summoned there from all corners of Europe to cut the trees : to build and launch boats ; to sail them, finally, across the strip of water to that England he was to meet at last, to grapple with, and over- throw, even as the English huscarles in their turn bore down on that gay Minstrel Taillefer, who rode so insolently forth to meet them, with a song in his throat, tossing his sword in English eyes, still chanting the song of Eoland as he fell. None of the inn features were in the least informed with this great, impressive picture of its past. Yet does William seem by far the most realizable of all the personages who have inhabited the old house. There was another visitor whose presence Mon- sieur Paul declared was as entirely real as if she, also, had only just passed within the court-yard. " I know not why it is, but of all these great, ces fanieux, Madame de Sevigne seems to me the 194 THREE NORMANDY INNS. nearest, in point of time. Her visit appears to have happened only yesterday. I never enter her room but I seem to see her moving about, talk- ing-, laughing-, speaking in epigrams. She men- tions the inn, you know, in her letters. She gives the details of her journey in full." I, also, knew not why ; but, later, after Mon- sieur Paul had left us, when he had shut himself out, along with the pattering raindrops, and had closed us in with the warmth and the flickering fire-light, there came, with astonishing clearness, a vision of that lady's visit here. She and her company of friends might have been stopping, that very instant, without, in the open court. I, also, seemed to hear the very tones of their voices ; their talk was as audible as the wind rustling in the vines. In the growing stillness the vision grew and grew, till this was what I saw and heard » TWO BANQUETS AT DIVES. CHAPTEK XX. A SEM2NTEEXTH-CENTUEY REVIVAL. Outside tlie inn, some two Imndred years ago, there was a g^reat noise and con- fusion ; the cries of out- riders, of mounted guards- men and halberdiers, made the quiet village as noisy as a camp. An imposing cavalcade was being brought to a sharp stop ; for the outriders had sud- denly perceived the open inn entrance, with its raised portcullis, and they were shouting to the coachmen to turn in,.beneath the archway, to the paved court-yard within. In an incredibly short space of time the open quadrangle presented a brilliant picture ; the dashing guardsmen were dismounting : the maids and lackeys had quickly descended from their perches in the caleclies and coaches ; and the gentlemen of the household were dusting their wide hats and lace-trimmed coats. The halber- diers, ranging themselves in line, made a pris- matic grouping beneath the low eaves of the picturesque old inn. In the very middle of the 198 THREE NORMANDY INNS. court-yard stood a coach, resplendent in painted panels and emblazoned with ducal arms. About this coach, as soon as the four horses which drew the vehicle were brought to a standstill, cavaliers, footmen, and maids swarmed with effusive zeal. One of the footmen made a rush for the door- another let down the steps ; one cavalier was already presenting- an outstretched, deferential hand, while still another held forth an arm, as rigid as a post, for the use of the occupants of the ducal carriage. Three ladies were seated within. Large and roomy as was the vehicle, their voluminous drap- eries and the paraphernalia of their belongings seemed completely to fill the wide, deep seats. The ladies were the Duchesse de Chaulnes, Ma- dame de Kerman, and Madame de Sevigne. The faces of the Duchesse and of Madame de Kerman were invisible, being still covered with their masks, which, both as a matter of habit and of precaution against the sun's rays, they had re- ligiously worn during the long day's journey. But Madame de Sevigne had torn hers off; she was holding it in her hand, as if glad to be re- lieved from its confinement. All three ladies were in the highest possible spirits, Madame de Sevigne obviously being the leader of the jests and the laughter. They were in a mood to find everything amus- ing and delightful. Even after they had left the coach and were carefully picking their way over the rough stones — walking on their high-heeled "mules," at best, was always a dangerous per- THREE NORMANDY INNS. 199 formance — their laughter and gayety continued in undiminished exuberance. Madame de Sevigne's keen sense of humor found so many things to ridicule. Could anything, for example, be more comical than the spectacle they presented as they walked, in state, with their long trains and high- heeled slippers, up these absurd little turret steps, feeling their way as carefully as if they were each a pickpocket or an assassin ? The long line behind of maids carrying their muffs, and of lackeys with the muff-dogs, and of pages hold- ing their trains, and the grinning innkeeper, bursting with pride and courtesying as if he had St. Vitus's dance, all this crowd coiling round the rude spiral stairway — it was enough to make one die of laughter. Such state in such savage sur- roundings ! — they and their patch-boxes, and tow- ering head-gears and trains, and dogs and fans, all crowded into a place fit only for peasants ! When they reached their bedchambers the ridi- cule was turned into a condescending admiration ; they found their rooms unexpectedly clean and airy. The furniture was all antique, of interest- ing design, and though rude, really astonishingly comfortable. Beds and dressing-tables, mostly of Henry III.'s time, were elaborately canopied in the hideous crude draperies of that jarimitive epoch. How different were the elegant shapes and brocades of their own time ! Fortunately their women had suitable hangings and draperies with them, as well, of course, as any amount of linen and any number of mattresses. The settees and benches would do very well, with the aid of 200 THREE NOBMANDT INNS. their own hassocks and cushions, and, after all, it was only for a nig-ht, they reminded the other. The toilet, after the heat and exposure of the day, was necessarily a long one. The Duchesse and Madame de Kerman had their faces to make up — all the paint had run, and not a joatch was in its place. Hair, also, of this later de Maintenon period, with its elaborate artistic ranges of curls, to say nothing of the care that must be given to the coif and the " follette," these were matters that demanded the utmost nicety of arrangement. In an hour, however, the three ladies reassem- bled, in the i^anelled lower room — in " la Cham- bre de la Pucelle." In spite of the care her two companions had given to repairing the damages caused by their journey, of the three, Madame de Sevigne looked by far the freshest and youngest. She still wore her hair in the loosely flowing de Montespan fashion; a style which, though noAV out of date, was one that exactly suited her fair skin, her candid brow, and her brilliant eyes. These latter, when one examined them closely, were found to be of different colors ; but this pe- culiarity, which might have been a serious defect in any other countenance," in Madame de Sevigne's brilliant face was perhaps one cause of its extraor- dinarily luminous quality. Not one feature was perfect in that fascinatingly mobile face : the chin was a trifle too long for a woman's chin ; the lips, that broke into such delicious curves when she laughed, when at rest betrayed the firmness of her wit and the almost masculine quality of her reasoning judgment. Even her arms and hands THREE NORMANDY INNS. 201 and her shoulders were " mal tallies," as her con- temporaries woukl have told you. But what a charm in those irregular features ! Wliat a seduc- tiveness in the ensemble of that not too-well-pro- portioned figure ! "What an indescribable radiance seemed to emanate from the entire personality of this most captivating- of women ! As she moved about the low room, dark with the trembling shadows of light that flowed from the bunches of candles in the sconces, Madame de Sevigne's clear complexion, and her unpow- dered chestnut curls, seemed to spot the room with light. Her companions, though dressed in the very height of the fashion, were j^et not half as catching to the eye. Neither their minute waists, nor their elaborate underskirts and trains, nor their tall goffered coifs (the duchesse's was not un- like a bishop's mitre, studded as it was with ruby- headed pins), nor the correctness of these ladies* carefully placed patches, nor yet their painted necks and tinted eyebrows, could charm as did the unmodish figure of Madame de Sevigne — a figure so indifi'erently clad, and yet one so replete with its distinction of innate elegance and the subtle charm of her individuality. With the entrance of these ladies dinner was served at once. The talk flowed on ; it was, how- ever, more or less restrained by the presence of the always too curious lackeys, of the bustling inn- keeper, and the gentlemen of the household in at- tendance on the party. As a spectacle, the little room had never boasted before of such an assem- blage of fashion and greatness. Never before had 202 THREE NORMANDY INNS. the air under tlie rafters been so loaded with scents and j)erfumes — these ladies seeming, indeed, to breathe out odors. Never before had there been g-rouped there such splendor of toilet, nor had such courtly accents been heard, nor such finished laughter. The fire and the candlelight were in competition which should best light up the tall transparent caps, the lace fichus, the bro- cade bodices, and the long trains. The little muff- dogs, released from their prisons, since the muffs were laid aside at dinner-time, blinked at the fire, curling their minute bodies— clipped lion-fashion — about the huge andirons, as they snored to kill time, knowing their own dinner would come only when their mistresses had done. After the dessert had been served the ladies withdrew ; they were preceded by the ever-bowing innkeeper, who assured them, in his most rever- ential tones, that they would find the room open- ing on the other court-yard even warmer and more comfortable than the one they Avere in. In spite of the walk across the paved court-yard and the enormous height of their heels, always a fact to be remembered, the ladies voted to make the change, since by that means they could be assured the more entire seclusion. Mild as was the May air, Madame de Kerman's hand-glass hanging at her side was quickly lifted in the very middle of the open court-yard; she had scarcely passed the door when she had felt one of her patches blowing off. "I caught it just in time, dear duchesse,'' she cried, as she stood quite still, replacing it with a THREE NORMANDY INNS. 203 fresh one picked from her patch-box, as the others passed her. " The very best patch-maker I have found lives in the rue St. Denis, at the sign of La Perle des Mouches ; have you discovered him, dear friend ? " said the duchesse, as they walked on toward the low door beneath the galleries. " No, dear duchesse, I fear 1 have not even looked for him — the science of patches I have always found so much harder than the science of living ! ''' gayly answered Madame de Sevigne. Madame de Kerman had now rejoined them, and all three passed into la Chambre des Marmousets. CHAPTEK XXI. THE APTEE-DINNER TALK OF THREE GREAT LADIES. j. j" it:'-—-^ The three ladies grouped tliem- %]tii(M~^Wit-j^ selves about the fire, which ••^^^^. 1^!^ (^"^ ^^^^^' found already lighted. trsij^l^.T/f '^^ rj^]^Q duchesse chose a Henry II. carved arm-chair, one, she laughingly remarked, quite large enough to have held both the King and Di- ana. A lackey carrying the inevitable muff-dog's, their fans, and scent-bottles, had followed the ladies ; he placed a hassock at the duchesse's feet, two beneath the slender feet of Madame de Ker- man, and, after having been bidden to open one of the casements, since it was still so light without, withdrew, leaving* the ladies alone. Although Madame de Sevigne had comfortably ensconced herself in one of the deep window-seats, piling the cushions behind her, no sooner was the window opened than with characteristic impetu- osity she jumped up to look out into the country that lay beyond the leaded glass. In spite of the long day's drive in the open air, her ai^petite for blowing- roses and sweet earth smells had not been sated. Madame de Sevigne all her life had been the victim of two loves and a passion ; she adored societj^ and she loved nature; these were her MADAME DE SEVIGNE. THREE NORMANDY INNS. 205 lesser delig-lits, that gave way before the chief idolatry of her soul, her adoration for her daugh- ter. As she stood bj^ the open window, her charming face, always a mirror of her emotions, was suf- fused with a glow and a bloom that made it seem young again. Her eyes grew to twice their com- mon size under the " wandering " eyelids, as her gaze roved over the meadows and across the tall grasses to the sea. A part of her youth was be- ing, indeed, vividly brought back to her ; the sight of this marine landscape recalled many memories ; and with the recollection her whole face and fig- ure seemed to irradiate something of the inward ardor that consumed her. She had passed this very road, through this same country before, long ago, in her j^outh, with her children. She half smiled at the remembrance of a description given of the impression produced by her appearance on the journey by her friend the Abbe Arnauld ; he had ecstatically compared her to Latona seated in an open coach, between a youthful Apollo and a young Diana. In spite of the abbe's jDoetical ex- travagance, Madame de Sevigne recognized, in this moment of retrospect, the truth of the pict- ure. That, indeed, had been a radiant moment ! Her life at that time had been so full, and the rapture so complete — the rapture of possessing her children — that she could remember to have had the sense of fairl}^ evaporating happiness. And noAV, the sigh came, how scattered was this gay group ! her son in Brittany, her daughter in Provence, two hundred leagues away ! And she, 206 THREE NORMANDY INNS. an elderly Latona, mourning- her Apollo and lier divine huntress, her incomparable Diana. The inextinguishable flame of j^outh was burn- ing still, however, in Madame de Sevig-ne's rich nature. This adventure, this amazing- adventure of three ladies of the court having- to pass the nig-ht in a rude little Normandy inn, she, for one, was finding richly seasoned with the spice of the unforeseen ; it would be something to talk of and write about for a month hence at Chaulnes and at Paris. Their entire journej^ in point of fact, had been a series of the most delightful episodes. It was now nearly a month since they had started from Picardy, from the castle of Chaulnes, going into Normandy via Piouen. They had been on a driving tour, their destination being Rennes, which they would reach in a week or so. They had been trav- elling in great state, with the verj' best coach, the verj^ best horses ; and they had been guarded by a whole regiment of cavaliers and halberdiers. Ev- ery possible precaution had been taken against their being disagreeably surprised on their route. Their chief fear on the journey had been, of course, the cry common in their day of " Au voleiir ! " and the meeting of brigands and assassins ; for, once outside of Paris and the police reforms of that dear Colbert, and one must be prepared to take one's life in one's hand. Happily, no such misad- ventures had befallen them. The roads, it is true, they had found for the most part in a horrible condition ; they had been pitched about from one end of their coach to the other > they might easily have imagined themselves at sea. The dust also THREE NORMANDY INNS. 207 had nearly blinded them, in spite of their masks. The other nuisances most difficult to put up with had been the swarm of beggars that infested the roadsides ; and worst of all had been the army of crippled, deformed, and mangy soldiers. These latter they had encountered everywhere; their whines and cries, their armless, legless bod- ies, their hideous filth, and their insolent impor- tunities, they had found a veritable pest. Another annoyance had been the over-zealous courtesy of some of the upper middle-class. Only yesterday, in the very midst of the dust and under the burning noon sun, they had all been forced to alight, to receive the homage tendered the duchesse, of some thirty w-omen and as many men. Each one of the sixty must, of course, kiss the duchesse's hand. It was really an outrage to have exposed them to such a form of torture ! Poor Madame de Kerman, the delicate one of the party, had entirely collapsed after the ceremony. The duchesse also had been prostrated ; it had wearied her more than all the rest of the journey. Madame de Sevigne alone had not suffered. She was pos- sessed of a degree of physical fortitude which made her equal to any demand. The other two ladies, as well as she herself, were now experienc- ing the pleasant exhilaration which comes with the hour of rest after an excellent dinner. They were in a condition to remember nothing except the agreeable. Madame de Sevigne was the first to break the silence. She turned, with a brisk yet graceful abrupt- ness, to the two ladies still seated before the low 208 THREE NORMANDY INNS. fire. With a charming outburst of enthusiasm she exclaimed aloud : " What a beauty, and youth, and tenderness this spring- has, has it not % " " Yes," answered the duchesse, smiling gra- ciously into Madame de Sevigne's brilliantly lit face; "yes, the weather in truth has been perfect." " What an adorable journey we have had ! " con- tinued Madame de Bevigne, in the same tone, her ardor undampened by the cooler accent of her friend — she was used to having her enthusiasm greeted with consideration rather than response. " What a journey ! — only meeting with the most agreeable of adventures ; not the slightest incon- venience anywhere ; eating the very best of every- thing ; and driving through the heart of this en- chanting springtime ! " Her listeners laughed quietly, with an accent of indulgence. It was the habit of her world to find everything Madame de Sevigne did or said charming. Even her frankness was forgiven her, her tact was so perfect ; and her spontaneity had always been accounted as her chief excellence ; in the stifled air of the court and the rueUes it had been frequently likened to the blowing in of a fresh May breeze. Her i3resent mood was one well known to both ladies. " Always ' pretty pagan,' dear madame," smiled Madame de Kerman, indulgently. "How well named — and what a happy hit of our friend Ar- nauld d'Audilly ! You are in truth a delicious — an adorable pagan ! Y^ou have such a sense of the joy of living ! Why, even living in the country THREE NORMANDY INNS. 209 has, it appears, no terrors for you. We hear of your walking- about in the moonlig-ht — you make your very trees talk, they tell us, in Italian— in Latin ; you actually pass whole hours alone with the hamadryads ! " There was just a suspicion of irony in Madame de Kerman's tone, in spite of its caressing- softness ; it was so impossible to con- ceive of anyone really finding- nature endurable, much less pretending- to discover in trees and fiowers anything- amusing- or suggestive of senti- ment ! But Madame de Sevigne was quite impervious to her friend's raillery. She responded, with per- fect good humor : " AVhy not ?— why not try to discover beauties in nature ? One can be so happy in a wood ! AVhat a charming tiling to hear a leaf sing ! I know few things more delightful than to watch the triumph of the month of May when the nightingale, the cuckoo, and the lark open the spring in our forests ! And then, later, come those beautiful crystal days of autumn— days that are neither warm-, nor yet are they really cold ! And then the trees — how eloquent they can be made; with a little teaching they may be made to converse so charmingly. Bella cosa far niente, says one of my trees ; and another answers, Amor odit inertes. Ah, when I had to bid farewell to all my leaves and trees ; when my son had to dispose of the forest of Buron, to pay for some of his follies, you remember how I wept! It seemed to me I could actually feel the grief of those dispos- sessed sylvans and of all those homeless dryads ! '' 210 THREE NORMANDY INNS. "It is this, dear friend — this life you lead at Les Rochers — and your enthusiasm, which keep you so young. Yes. I am sure of it. How incon- ceivably young-, for instance, you are looking this very evening ! You and the glow out yonder make youth seem no longer a legend." The duchesse delivered her flattering little sjDeech with a caressing tone. She moved gently forward in her chair, as if to gain a better view of the twilight and her friend. At the sound of the duchesse's voice Madame de Sevigne again turned, with the same charming smile and the quick im- pulsiveness of movement common to her. Dur- ing her long monologue she had remained stand- ing; but she left the window now to regain her seat amid the cushions of the window. There was something better than the twilight and the spring in the air ; here, within, were two delight- ful friends — and listeners ; there was before her, also, the prospect of one of those endless conver- sations that were the chief delight of her life. She laughed as she seated herself — a gay, frank, hearty little laugh — and she spread out her hands with the opening of her fan, as, with her usual vivacious spontaneity, her mood changed. " Fancy, dear duchesse, the punishment that comes to one who commits the crime of looking young — younger than one ought ! My son-in-law, M. de Grignan, actually avows he is in daily terror lest I should give him a father-in-law i " All three ladies laughed gayly at this absurd- ity; the subject of Madame de Sevigne's remarry ing had come to be a venerable joke now It had THREE NORMANDY INNS. 211 been talked of at court and in society for nearly forty years ; but such was the conquering- power of her charms that these two friends, her listeners, saw nothing- really extravag-ant in her son-in-law's fear ; she was one of those rare women who, even at sixty, continue to sug-gest the altar rather than the g-rave. Madame de Kerman was the first to recover her breath after the laug-hter. " Dear friend, you mig-ht assure him that after a j^outh and the g-olden meridian of your years passed in smiling- indifference to the sig-hs of a Prince de Couti, of a Turenne, of a Fouquet, of a Bussy de Eabutin, at sixty it is scarcely likely that " "Ah, dear lady! at sixty, when one has the complexion and the curls, to say nothing of the eyes of our dear enchantress, a woman is as dan- gerous as at thirty ! " The duchesse's flattery was charmingly put, with just enough vivacity of tone to save it from the charge of insipidity. Madame de Sevigne bowed her curls to her waist. " Ah, dear duchesse, it isn't age," she retorted, quickly, "that could make me commit follies. It is the fact that that son-in-law of mine actually surrounds me with spies— he keeps me in perpet- ual surveillance. Such a state of captivity is capa- ble of making me forget everything ; I am begin- ning to develop a positive rage for follies. You know that has been my chief fault— always ; discre- tion has been left out of my composition. But I say now, as I have always said, that if I could manage to live two hundred years, I should become the most delightful person in the world 1 " 212 THREE NORMANDY INNS. She herself was the first to lead in the laughtel that followed her outburst; and then the du- chesse broke in : ''You talk of defects, dear friend; but reflect what a life yours has been. So surrounded and courted, and yet you were always so guarded ; so free, and yet so wise ! So g-ay, and yet so chaste ! " " If you rubbed out all those flattering- colors, dear duchesse, and wrote only, ' She worshipped her children, and preferred friends to lovers,' the portrait would be far nearer to the truth. It is easy to be chaste if one has only known one pas- sion in one's life, and that the maternal one ! " Again a change jjassed over Madame de Sevig- ne's mobile face ; the bantering- tone was lost in a note of deep feeling. This gift of sensibility had always been accounted as one of Madame de Sevig- ne's chief charms; and now, at sixty, she was as completely the victim of her moods as in her earlier youth. " AATiere is j^our daughter, and how is she ? " sympatheticallj^ queried the duchesse. " Oh, she is still at Grignan, as usual ; she is well, thank God. But, dear duchesse, after all these years of separation I suffer still, cruelly." The tears sprang to Madame de Sevigue's eyes, as she added, with passion and a force one would scarcely have expected in one whose manners were so finished, " the truth is, dear friends, I can- not live without her. I do not find I have made the least progress in that career. But, even now, believe me, these tears are sweeter than all else THREE NORMANDY INNS. 213 in life— more enrapturing" than the most trans- porting- joy ! " Madame de Kerman smiled tenderly into the rapturous mother's face ; but the duchesse moved, as if a little restless and uneasy under this shower of maternal feeling. For thirty years her friends had had to listen to Madame de Sevigne's rhap- sodies over the perfections of her incomparable daughter. Although sensibility was not the emo- tional fashion of the day, maternity, in the person of Madame de Sevigne, had been apotheosized into the queen of the passions, if only because of its rarity; still, even this lady's most intimate friends sometimes wearied of banqueting- off the feast of Madame de Grignan's virtues. " Have you heard from Madame de La Fayette recently % " asked the duchesse, allowing just time enough to elapse, before putting- the question, for Madame de Sevigne's emotion to subside into com- posure. The duchesse was too exquisitely bred to allow her impatience to take the form of even the appearance of haste. " Oh, yes," was Madame de Sevigne's quiet re- ply ; the turn in the conversation had been in- stantly understood, in spite of the delicacy of the duchesse's methods. " Oh, yes — I have had a line — only a line. You know how she detests writing, above all things. Her letters are all the same — two lines to say that she has no time in which to say it ! " " Did she not once write you a pretty little series of epigrams about not writing *? " " Oh, yes— some time ago, when I was with my 214 THREE NORMANDY INNS. daughter. I've quoted them so often, they have become famous. ' You are in Provence, my beauty ; your hours are free, and your mind still more so. Your love for corresponding with every- one still endures within you, it appears ; as for me, the desire to write to any human being has long" since passed away — forever ; and if I had a lover who insisted on a letter every morning, I should certainly break with him ! ' " " What a curious compound she is ! And how well her soubriquet becomes her ! " " Yes, it is perfect — ' Le Brouillard ' — the fog. It is indeed a fog that has always enveloped her, and what charming horizons are disclosed once it is lifted ! " "And her sensibilities — of what an exquisite quality ; and what a rare, precious type, indeed, is the whole of her nature ! Do you remember how alarmed she would become when listening to music ■? " " And yet, with all this sensibility and delicacy of organization there was another side to her nature." Madame de Kerman paused a moment before she went on ; she was not quite sure how far she dared go in her criticism ; Madame de La Fayette was such an intimate friend of Madame de Sevigne's. " You mean," that lady broke out, with unhesi- tating candor, " that she is also a very selfish per- son. You know that is my daughter's theory of her — she is always telling me how Madame de La Fayette is making use of me ; that while her sen- sitiveness is such that she cannot sustain the THREE NOBMANDT INNS. 215 tragedy of a farewell visit — if I am going to Les Eochers or to Provence, when I go to paj^ my last visit I must pretend it is only an ordinary run- ning-in ; yet her delicacy does not prevent her from making very indelicate proposals, to suit her own convenience. You remember what one of her commands was, don't you ? " " No," answered the duchesse, for both herself and her companion. " Pray tell us." Madame de Sevigne went on to narrate that once, when at Les Piochers, Madame de La Fayette was quite certain that she, Madame de Sevigne, was losing her mind, for no one could live in the provinces and remain sane, poring over stupid books and sitting over fires. " She was certain I should sicken and die, be- sides losing the tone of my mind," laughed Ma- dame de Sevigne, as she called up the picture of her dissolution and rapid disintegration; "and therefore it was necessary at once that I should come up to Paris. This latter command was de- livered in the tone of a judge of the Supreme Court. The penalty of my disobedience was to be her ceasing to love me. I was to come up to Paris directly — on the minute ; I was to live with you, dear duchesse ; I was not to buy any horses until spring ; and, best of all, I was to find on my arri- val a purse of a thousand crowns which would be lent me without interest! What a proposition, mon Dieii, what a proposition ! To have no house of my own, to be dependent, to have no carnage, and to be in debt a thousand crowns ! " As Madame de Scvigna lifted her hands the 21 G THREE NOBMANDT INNS. laces of her sleeves were fairly trembliug" with the force of her indignation. There were certain things that always put her in a passion, and Ma- dame de La Fayette's peculiarities she had found at times unendurable. Her listeners had followed her narration with the utmost intensity and ab- sorption. When she stopped, their eyes met in a look of assenting' comment. " It was perfectly characteristic, all of it ! She judged you, doubtless, by herself. She always seems to me, even now, to keep one eye on her comfort and the other on her purse ! " " Ah, dear duchesse, how keen you are ! " laugh- ingly acquiesced Madame de St§vigne, as with a shrug she accepted the verdict — her indignation melting with the shrug. " And how right ! No woman ever drives better bargains, without moving a finger. From her invalid's chair she can conduct a dozen lawsuits. She spends half her existence in courting death ; she caresses her maladies ; she positively hugs them ; but she can always be mi- raculously resuscitated at the word money ! " " Yes," added with a certain relish Madame de Kerman. "And this is the same woman who must be forever running away from Paris because she can no longer endure the exertion of talking, or of replying, or of listening; because she is wearied to extinction, as she herself admits, of saying good-morning and good- evening. She must hide herself in some pastoral retreat, where simply, as she says, ' to exist is enough ; ' where she can remain, as it were, miraculously suspended between heaven and earth ! " THREE KORMANBT INNS. 217 A ripple of amused laug-liter went round the little group; there was nothing these ladies en- joyed so keenly as a delicate dish of gossip, sea- soned with wit, and stuffed with eijigrams. This talk was exactly to their taste. The silence and seclusion of their surroundings were an added stimulus to confidence and to a freer interchange of opinions about their world. Paris and Ver- sailles seemed so very far away ; it would appear safe to say almost anything about one's dearest friends. There was nothing to remind them of the restraints of levees, or the penalty indiscre- tion must pay for folly breathed in that whisper- ing gallery — the ruelle. It was indeed a delight- ful hour ; altogether an ideal situation. The fire had burned so low only a few embers were alive now, and the candles were beginning to flicker and droop in the sconces. But the three ladies refused to find the little room either cold or dark; their talk was not half done yet, and their muffs would keep them warm. The shadow of the deepening gloom they found delightfully provocative of confidences. After a short pause, while Madame de Kermau busied herself with tho tongs and the fagots, try- ing to reinvigorate the dying flames, the duchesse asked, in a somewhat more intimate tone than she had used yet : " And the duke — do you really think she loved the Duke de La Rochefoucauld ? " " She reformed him, dear duchesse ; at least she always proclaims his reform as the justification of her love." 218 THREE NORMANDY INNS. " You — you esteemed liim yourself very liig-hly, did you not ? " " Oh, I loved him tenderly ; how could one help it ? He was the best as well as the most brilliant of men ! I never knew a tenderer heart ; domes- tic joys and sorrows affected him in a way to ren- der him incomparable. I have seen him weep over the death of his mother, who only died ei^ht years before him, you know, with a depth of sincerity that made me adore him." " He must in truth have been a very sincere per- son." " Sincere ! " cried Madame de Sevigne, her eyes flaming-. " Had you but seen his deathbed ! His bearing was sublime ! Believe me, dear friend, it was not in vain that M. de La Rochefoucauld had written philosophic reflections all his life; he had already anticipated his last moments in •such a way that there was nothing either new or strange in death when it came to him." " Madame de La Fayette truly mourned him — don't you think so ? You were with her a great deal, were you not, after his death ? " "I never left her. It was the most pitiable sight to see her in her loneliness and her misery. You see, their common ill-health and their seden- tary habits, had made them so necessary to each other ! It was, as it were, two souls in a single body. Nothing could exceed the confidence and charm of their friendship ; it was incomparable. To Madame de La Fayette his loss came as her death-blow: life seems at an end for her; for where, indeed, can she find another such friend, or THREE NORMANDY INNS. 219 such intercourse, such sweetness and charm — such confidence and consideration i " There was a moment's silence after Madame de Sevigne's eloquent outburst. The eyes of the three friends were lost for a moment in the twin- kling- flames. The duchesse and Madame de Ker- man exchanged meaning glances. " Since the duke's death her thoughts are more and more turned toward religion. I hear she has been fortunate in her choice of directors, has she not ? Du Guet is said to be an ideal confessor for the authoress of ' La Princesse de Cleves.' " There was just a suspicion of malice in the du- chesse's tones. " Oh, he was born to take her in hand. He knew just when to speak with authority", and when to make use of the arts of persuasion. He wrote to her once, you remember : 'You, who have passed your life in di'eaming — cease to di'eam ! You, who have taken such pride unto yourself for being so true in all things, were very far, indeed, from the truth — you were onlj" half true — falsely true. Your godless wisdom was in reality purely a matter of good taste ! ' " " What audacity ! Bossuet himself could not have put the truth more nakedlj^" The duchesse was one of those to whom truths were novelties, and unpleasant ones. " Bossuet, if I remember rightly, was with the Duke de La Rochefoucauld at the last, was he not ? " " Yes," responded Madame de Sevigne ; " he was with him ; he administered the supreme unction. 220 THREE NORMANDT INNS. The duke was in a beautiful state of grace. M. Vinet, you remember, said of him that he died with ' perfect decorum.' " " Speaking- of dying- reminds me " — cried sud- denly Madame de Sevigne — " how are the duke'a hanging's g-etting on % " "They begin, the duke writes me, to hang again to-morrow," answered the duchesse, with a certain air of disdain, the first appearance of thia weapon of the great now coming to the grande dame's aid. Her husband, the Duke de Chaulnes' trouble with his revolutionary citizens at Eennes was a subject that never failed to arouse a feeling of angry contempt in her. It was too preposter- ous, the idea of those insolent creatures rising against him, their rightful duke and master ! The duchesse's feeling in the matter was fully shared by her friends. In all the court there was but one opinion in the matter — hanging was really far too good for the wretched creatures. " Monsieur de Chaulnes," the duchesse went on, with ironical contempt in her voice, " still goes on punishing Eennes ! " " This province and the duke's treatment of it will serve as a capital example to all others. It will teach those rascals," Madame de Kerman con- tinued, in lower tones, " to respect their gover- nors, and not to throw stones into their gardens ! " " Fancy that — the audacity of throwing stones into their duke's garden! Why, did j^ou know, they actually — those insolent creature^ actually called him — called the duke — ' gros coclion ? ' " All three ladies gasped in horror at this unpar- THREE NORMANDY INNS. 221 alleled instance of audacity ; they threw up their hands, as they groaned over the picture, in low tones of finished elegance. " It is little wonder the duke hangs right and left ! The dear duke — what a model governor ! How I should like to have seen him sack that street at Rennes, "with all the ridiculous old men, and the women in childbirth, and the children, turned out pele-mele ! And the hanging, too — why, hanging now seems to me a positively refreshing perform- ance ! " And Madame de Sevigne laughed with unstinted gayety as at an excellent joke. The picture of Rennes and the cruelty dealt its inhabitants was a pleasant j^icture, in the contem- plation of which these ladies evidently found much delectation. They were quiet for a longer period of time than usual ; they continued silent, as they looked into the fire, smiling; the flames there made them think of other flames as forms of merited punishment. " A curious people those Bas Bretons," finally ejaculated Madame de Sevigne. "I never could understand how Bertrand Duguesclin made them the best soldiers of his day in France ! " " You know Lower Brittany very well, do you not, dear friend 1 " " Xot so well as the coast. Les Rochers is in Upper Brittany, you know. I know" the south better still. Ah, what a charming journey I once took along the Loire with my friend Bien- Bon, the Abbe de Coulanges. We found it the most enchanting country in the world — the coun- try of feasts and of famine ; feasts for us and fam- 222 THREE NORMANDY INNS. ine for the people. I remember we had to cross the river ; our coach was placed on the barge, and we were rowed along by stout peasants. Through the glass windows of the coach we looked out at a series of changing pictures — the views were charming. We sat, of course, entirely at our ease, on our soft cushions. The country people, crowded together below, were— ugh !— like pigs in straw." " Was Bien-Bon with you when you made that little excursion to St, Germain?'' queried the duchesse. " Ah, that was a gay night," joyously responded Madame de Sevigne. " How well we amused our- selves on that little visit that we paid Madame de Maintenon — when she was only Madame Scar- ron." "Was she so handsome then as they say she was — at that time "? " " Very handsome ; she was good, too, and ami- able, and easy to talk to; one talked well and readily with her. She was then only the gover- ness of the king's bastards, you know— of the children he had had by Madame de Montespan. That was the first step toward governing the king. Well, one night— the night to which you refer — I remember we were all supping with Madame de La Fayette. We had been talking endlessly ! Suddenly it occun-ed to us it would be a most amusing adventure to take Madame Scar- ron home, to the very last end of the Faubourg Saint Germain, far beyond where Madame de La Fayette lived— near Yaugirard, out into the Bois, THREE NORMANDY INNS. 223 iu the country. The Abbe came too. It was mid- night when we started. The house, when at last we reached it, we found large and beautiful, with large and fine rooms and a beautiful garden ; for Madame Scarron, as g-overness of the king's chil- dren, had a coach and a lot of servants and horses. She herself dressed then modestly and yet mag-nificently, as a woman should, who spent her life among people of the highest rank. We had a merry outing-, returning- in high spirits, blessed in having no end of lanterns, and thus assured against robbers." "She and Madame de La Fayette were very close friends, I remember, during- that time," mused the duchesse, " when they were such near neighbors." " Yes," Madame de Sevigne went on, as unwear- ied now, although it was nearly midnight, as in the beginning of the long evening. " Yes ; I always thought Madame de Maintenon's satirical little joke about Madame de La Fayette's bed festooned with gold — ' I might have fifty thousand pounds income, and never should I live in the style of a great lady ; never should I have a bed festooned with gold like Madame de La Fayette ' — was the beginning of their rupture." '• All the same, Madame de La Fayette, lying on that bed, beneath the gold hangings, was a much more simple person than ever was Madame de Maintenon ! " " Your speaking of bed reminds me, dear ladies ours must be quite cold by this time. How we have chatted ! What a delightful gossip I But 224 THREE NORMANDY INNS. we must not forget that our journey to-morrow is to be a long- one ! " The duchesse rose, the other two ladies rising instantly, observing, in spite of the intimate rela- tions in which they stood toward the duchesse, the deference due to her more exalted rank. The latter clapped her hands : outside the door a shuffling and a low groan were heard — the groan came from the sleepy lackey, roused from his deep slumber, as he uncoiled himself from the close knot into which his legs and body were knit in the curve of the narrow stairs. The ladies, a few seconds later, were wending their way up the steep turret steps. They were preceded by torches and followed by quite a long train of maids and lackeys. For a long hour, at least, the little inn resounded with the sound of hurrying feet, of doors closing and shutting; with the echo of voices giving commands and of others purring in sleepy accents of obedience. Then one by one the sounds died away ; the lights went out in the bedchambers ; faint flickerings stole through the chinks of doors and windows. The watchman cried out the hour, and the gleam of a lantern flashed here and there, illuminating the open court-yard. The cocks crowed shrilly into the night air. A halberdier turned in his sleep where he lay, on some straw beneath the coach - shed, his halberd rattling as it struck the cobbles. And over the whole — over the gentle slumber of the great ladies and the sleep of beast and man — there fell the peace and the stillness of the mid- night — of that midnight of long ago. CHAPTEK XXn. A NIKETEENTH-CENniRY BREAKFAST. The very next morning-, after the rain, and the vision I had had of Madame de Se- vigne, conjured up by my surroundings and the read- ing of her letters, Monsieur Paul paid us an early call. He came to beg the loan of our sitting-room, he said. He had had a despatch from a coaching-party from Trouville ; they were to arrive for breakfast. The whip and owner of the coach was a great friend of his, he proffered by way of exi^lanation — a certain count who had a genius for friendship — one who also had an artist's talent for admiring the beautiful. He was among those who were in a state of perpetual adoration before the inn's perfections. He made yearly pilgrimages from his chateau above Kouen to eat a noon breakfast in the Cliambre des Mar- mousets. Now, a breakfast served elsewhere than in this chamber would be, from his point of view, to have journeyed to a shrine to find the niche empty. The gift that was begged of us, therefore, was the loan for a few hours of the famous little room. In less than a half -hour we were watching the 226 THREE NORMANDY INNS. entrance of tlie coacli by tlie side of Madame Le Mois. We were all three seated on tlie green bencb. Faintly at first, and presently gaining in dis- tinctness, came the fall of horses' hoofs and the rumble of wheels along the highway. A little cavalcade was soon passing beneath the archway. First there dashed in two horsemen, who had sprung to the ground almost as soon as their steeds' hoofs struck the paved court-yard. Then there swept by a jaunty dog-cart, driven by a man- nish figure radiantly robed in white. S^viftly fol- lowing came the dash and jingle of four coach- horses, bathed in sweat, rolling the vehicle into the court as if its weight were a thing of air. All save one among the gay party seated on the high seats, were too busy with themselves and their chatter, to take heed of their surroundings. A lady beneath her deep parasol was busily en- gaged in a gay traffic of talk with the groups of men peopling the back seats of the coach. One of the men, however, was craning his neck beyond the heads of his companions : he was ninning his eye rapidly up and ^ovm the long inn facade. Finally his glance rested on us ; and then, with a rush, a deep red mounted the man's cheek, as he tore off his derby to wave it, as if in a triumph of discovery. Kenard had been true to his promise. He had come to see his friends and to test the famous Sauterne. He flung himself down from his lofty perch to take his seat, entirely as a mat- ter of course, beside us on the green bench. " What luck, hey % — greatest luck in the world, THREE NORMANDY INNS. 227 ending- you in, like this. I've been in no end of a tremble, fearing- 3'ou'd gone to Caen, or Falaise, or somewhere, and that I shouldn't see j^ou after all. Well, how are j-ou ? How goes it ? What do you think of old Dives and Monsieur Paul, and the rest of it ? I see you're settled ; you took the palace chamber. Trust American women — they know the best, and get it." " But these people, who are the}', and how did you — ? " We were unfeignedly glad to see him, but curiosity is a passion not to be trifled with — • after a month in the ]3rovinces. " Oh — the De Troisacs ? Old friends of mine — known them years. Jolly lot. Charming fel- low, De Troisac — only good Frenchman I've ever known. They're just off their yacht ; saw them all yesterday at the Trouville Casino. Said they were running down here for breakfast to - day, asked me, and I came, of course." He laughed as he added : " I said I should come, you remember, to get some of that Sauterne. A man will go any distance for a good bottle of 'odne, you know." Meanwhile, in the court-yard, the party on the coach, by means of ladders and the helping of the grooms, were scrambling down from their seats. Eenard's friend, the Comte de Troisac, was eas- ily picked out from the group of men. He was the elder of the party — stoutish, with frank eyes and a smiling mouth ; he was bustling about from the gaunt grooms to the ladder, and from ladder to the coach-seat, giving his commands right and left, and executing most of them himself. A tall, slim woman, with drooping eyelids, and an air of 228 THREE NORMANDY INNS. extreme elegance and of cultivated fatigue, was also easily recognizable as the countess. It took two gi'ooms, two of the gentlemen guests, and her husband to assist her to the ground. Her passage down the steps of the ladder had been long enough, however, to enable her to display a series of jDretty poses, each one more efiective than the others. When one has an instep of ideal elevation, what is the use of being born a Frenchwoman, unless one knows how to make use of opportunity ? From the dog-cart, that had rattled in across the cobbles with a dash and a spurt, there came quite a different accent and jDose. The whitish personage, whom we had mistakenly supposed to be a man, wore petticoats ; the male attire only held as far as the waist of the lady. The stiff white shirt-front, the knotted tie — a faultless male knot — ^the loose driving- jacket, with its sprig of white geranium, and the round straw-hat worn in mannish fashion, close to the level brows, was a costume that would have deceived either sex. Below the jacket flowed the straight lines of a straight skirt, that no further conjectures should be rendered necessary. This lady had a high- bred air of singular distinction, accentuated by a tremendously knowing look. She was at once elegant and rakish ; the gamin in her was obvi- ously the touch of caviare to season the woman of fashion. The mixture made an extraordinarily at- tractive ensemble. As she jumped to the ground, throwing her reins to a groom, her jump was a master-stroke ; it landed her squarely on her feet ; even as she struck the ground her hands wer6 THREE NORM AND T IXXS. 229 thrust deeply into her pockets. The man seated beside her, who now leaped out after her, seemed timid and awkward by contrast with her alert pre- cision. This couple moved at once toward the bench on which madame was seated. With the coming- in of the coach and the cart she had risen, waddling- forward to meet the party. Mon- sieur Paul was at the coach-wheels before the g-rooms had shot themselves down; De Troisac, with eager friendliness, stretched forth a hand from the top of his seat, exclaiming, with gay heartiness, " Ah, mon hon — comment Qa va ? " The mere was as eagerly greeted. Even the countess dismissed her indifference for the mo- ment, as she held out her hand to Madame Le Mois. " Dear Madame Le Mois — and it goes well with you? And the gout and the rheumatism, they have ceased to torment you ? Quelle bonne nou- velle ! And here are the dear old cocks and the wounded bantam. The cockatoos — ah, there they are, still swinging in the air ! Comme c'esf joli — et frais — et que Qa sent hon ! " Madame and Monsieur Paul were equally effu- sive in their inquiries and exclamations — it was clearly a meeting- of old friends. Madame Le Mois' face was meanwhile a study. The huge surface was glistening with pleasure : she was un- feignedly glad to see these Parisians : — but there was no elation at this meeting on such easy terms with greatness. Her shrewdness was as alive as ever; she was about to make money out of the 230 THREE NORMANDY INNS. visit — they were to liave of her best, but they must pay for it. Between her rapid fire of ques- tionings as to the countess's health and the his- tory of her travels, there was as rapid a shower of commands, sometimes shouted out, above all the hubbub, to the cooks standing gaping in the kitchen doorway, or whispered hoarsely to Ernes- tine and Marianne, who were flying about like wild pigeons, a little drunk with the novelty of this first breakfast of the season. " Allons, mon enfant — cours — cours — get thy linen, my child, and the silver candelabres. It is to be laid in the Marmousets, thou knowest. Paul will come presently. And the salads, pluck them and bring them in to me — cours — cours." The great world was all very well, and it was well to be on friendly, even intimate terms, with it ; but, Dieu ! one's own bread is of importance too ! And the countess, for all her delicacy, was a bonne fourchette. The countess and her friend, after a moment of standing in the court-yard, of patting the peli- can, of trying their blandishments on the fla- mingo, of catching up the bantam, and filling the air with their purring, and caressing, and in- cessant chatter, passed beneath the low door to the inner sanctum of madame. The two ladies were clearly bent on a few moments of unre- served gossip and that repairing of the toilet which is a religious act to women of fashion the world over. In the court-yard the scene was still a brilliant one. The gayly painted coach was now deserted. THREE NORMANDY INNS. 231 It stood, a chariot of state, as it were, awaiting- roy- alty ; its yellow sides gleamed like topaz in the sun. The grooms were unharnessing the leaders, that were still bathed in the white of their sweat. The count's dove-colored flannels were a soft mass against the snow of the chef's apron and cap ; the two were in deep consultation at the kitchen door. Monsieur Paul was showing, with all the absorp- tion of the artist, his latest Jumieges carvings to the taller, more awkward of the gentlemen, to the one driven in by the mannish beauty. The cockatoos had not ceased shrieking from the very beginning of the hubbub ; nor had the squirrels stopped running along the bars of their cage, a-flutter with excitement. The peacocks trailed their trains between the coach-wheels, an- nouncing, squawkingi}", their delight at the advent of a larger audience. AboA^e the cries of the fowls and the shrieks of the cocks, the chatter of human tongues, the subdued murmur of the ladies' voices coming through the open lattice, and the stamp of horses' hoofs, there swept above it all the light June breeze, rustling in the vines, shaking the thick branches against the wooden fagades. The two ladies soon made their appearance in the sunlit court-yard. The murmur of their talk and their laughter reached us, along with the frou- frou of their silken petticoats. " You were not bored, chere enfant, driving Monsieur d'Agreste all that long distance ? " The countess was smiling tenderly into her companion's face. She had stopped her to read- just the geranium sprig that was drooping in her 232 THREE NORMANDY INNS. friend's cover-coat. The smile was the smile of a sympathizing- angel, but what a touch of hidden malice there was in the notes of her caressing- voice ! As she repinned the hoidonmhre, she g-ave the dancing- eyes, that were brimming with the mirth of the coming retort, the searching inquest of her g-lance. " Bored ! Dieu, que non I " The black little beauty threw back her throat, laughing, as she rolled her great eyes. " Bored — with all the tricks I was playing- 1 Fernande ! pity me, there was such a little time, and so much to do ! " " So little time — only fourteen kilos ! " The countess compressed her lips ; they were smiling- no longer. " Ah, but you see, I had so much to combat. You had a whole season, last summer, in which to play your g-ame, your solemn game." Here the g-ay young widow rippled forth a pearly scale of treble laug-hter. " And I have had only a week, thus far ! " " Yes, but what time you make ! " And this time both ladies laughed, although, still, only one laughed well. " Ah ! those women — how they love each other," commented Renard, as he sat on the bench, swing-ing- his legs, with his eyes following- the two vanishing- figures. " Only women who are intimate — Parisian intimates — can cut to the bone like that, with a surg-eon's dexterity." He explained then that the handsome brunette was a widow, a certain Baronne dAutun, noted for her hunting and her conquests ; the last on the THREE NORMANDY INNS. 233 latter list was Monsieur d'Agi-este, a former ad- mirer of the countess ; he was somewhat famous as a scientist and socialist, so good a socialist as to refuse to wear his title of duke. The other two gentlemen of the party, who had joined them now, the two horsemen, were the Comtes de Mirant and de Fonbriant. These latter were two t^'pical j^oung" swells of the Jockey Club model ; their vacant, well-bred faces wore the correct degree of fashionable pallor, and their manners appeared to be also as perfect as their glances were inso- lent. Into these vacant faces the languid countess was breathing the inspiration of her smile. Enig- matic as was the latter, it was as simple as an in- fant's compared to the occult character of her glance. A wealth of complexities lay enfolded in the deep eyes, rimmed with their mvstic darkened circlet — that circle in which the Parisienne frames her experience, and through which she pleads to have it enlarged ! A Frenchwoman and cosmetics ! Is there any other combination on this round earth more sug- gestive of the comedy of high life, of its elegance and of its perfidy, of its finish and of its empti- ness 1 The men of the party wore costumes perilously suggestive of Opera Boufi'e models. Their fingers were richly begemmed ; their watch-chains were laden with seals and charms. Any one of the cos- tumes was such as might have been chosen by a tenor in which to warble effectively to a soubrette on the boards of a provincial theatre ; and it was 234 THREE NOBMAJSur IJ\J\^. worn by these fops of tlie Jockey Club with the air of its being- the last word in nautical fashions. Better than their costumes were their voices ; for what speech from human lips pearls itself off with such crispness and finish as the delicate French idiom from a Parisian tongue ? I never quite knew how it came about that we were added to this g-ay party of breakfasters. We found ourselves, however, after a high skir- mish of preliminary presentations, among- the number to take our places at the table. In the Chambre des Marmousets, Monsieur Paul, we found, had set the feast with the taste of an artist and the science of an archaeologist. The table itself was long- and narrow, a g-enuine fif- teenth-century table. Down the centre ran a strip of antique altar-lace ; the sides were left bare, that the lustre of the dark wood might be seen. In the centre was a deep old Caen bowl, with grapes and fuchsias to make a mound of soft color. A pair of seventeenth - century candelabres twisted and coiled their silver branches about their rich re- pousse columns ; here and there on the yellow strip of lace were laid bunches of June roses, those only of the rarer and older varieties having been chosen, and each was tied with a Louis XV. love-knot. Monsieur Paul was himself an omniscient figure at the feast ; he was by turns ofticiating as butler, carving, or serving from the side-tables ; or he was crossing- the court-yard with his careful, cat- like tread, a bottle under each arm. He was also constantly appealed to by Monsieur d'Agreste or the count, to settle a dispute about the age of the THREE NORMANDY INNS. 235 china, or the original home of the various okl chests scattered about the room. " Paul, your stained glass shows up well in this light," the count called out, wiping his mustache over his soup-plate. " Yes," answered Monsieur Paul, as he went on serving the sherry, pausing for a moment at the count's glass. "They always look well in full sunlight. It was a piece of pure luck, getting them. One can always count on getting hold of tapestries and carvings, but old glass is as rare as " " A pretty woman," interpolated the gay young widow, with the air of a connoisseur." " Outside of Paris — you should have added," gallantly contributed the count. Everyone went on eating after the light laughter had died away. The countess had not assisted at this brief con- versation ; she was devoting her attention to re- ceiving the devotion of the two young counts ; one was on either side of her, and both gave every outward and visible sign of wearing her chains, and of wearing them with insistance. The real contest between them ajopeared to be, not so much which should make the conquest of the lan- guid countess, as which should outflank the other in his compromising demeanor. The countess, beneath her drooping lids, watched them with the indulgent indolence of a lioness, too luxuriously lazy to spring. The countess, clearh^ was not made for sun- light. In the courtyard her face had seemed chiefly remarkable as a triumph of cosmetic treat- 236 THREE NORMANDY INNS. ment -, here, under this rich glow, the purity and delicacy of the features easily placed her among- the beauties of the Parisian world. Her eyes, now that the languor of the lids was disappearing with the advent of the wines, were magnificent ; her use of them was an open avowal of her own knowledge of their splendor. The young widow across the table was also using her eyes, but in a very different fashion. She had now taken off her straw hat ; the curly crop of a brown mane gave the brilliant face an added accent of vigor. The chien de race was the dominant note now in the muscu- lar, supple body, the keen-edged nostrils, and the intent gaze of the liquid eyes. These latter were fixed with the fixity of a savage on Charm. She was giving, in a sweet sibilant murmur, the man seated next her — Monsieur d'Agreste, the man who refused to bear his title— her views of the girl. " Those Americans, the Americans of the best type, are a race apart, I tell you ; we have nothing like them ; we condemn them because we don't un- derstand them. They understand us— they read us " "Oh, they read our books — the worst of them." " Yes, but they read the best too ; and the worst don't seem to hurt them. I'll warrant that Mees Gay — that is her name, is it not ?— has read Zola, for instance ; and yet, see how simple and inno- cent — yes — innocent, she looks." " Yes, the innocence of experience — which knows how to hide," said Monsieur d'Agreste, with a slight shrug. " Mees Gay ! " the countess cried out across the THREE NORMANDY INNS. 237 table, suddenl}' waking- from lier somuolcnce ; she had overheard the baroness in spite of the low tone in which the dialogue had been carried on ; her voice was so mellitluously sweet, one instinct- ively scented a touch of hidden poison in it — " Mees Gay, there is a question being i)ut at this side of the table you alone can answer. Pray pardon the impertinence of a personal question — but we hear that American young" ladies read Zola; is it true ! " " I am afraid that we do read him," was Charm's frank answer. " I have read him — but my reading* is all in the past tense now." " Ah — you found him too highly seasoned ? " one of the young counts asked, eagerly, with his nose in the air, as if scenting" an indiscretion. " No, I did not go far enough to get a taste of his horrors ; I stopped at his first period." " And what do you call his first period, dear mademoiselle ? " The countess's voice was still freighted with honey. Her husband coughed and gave her a warning" g'lance, and Renard was mov- ing uneasily in his chair. " Oh," Charm answered lightly, " his best pe- riod — -when he didn't sell." Everyone laug"hed. The little widow cried be- neath her breath : " EUe a de Vesprit, ceUe-Ia " " EUe en a de trop," retorted the countess. " Did you ever read Zola's ' Quatre Saisons ? ' " Renard asked, turning to the count, at the other end of the table. No, the count had not read it — but he could 238 THREE KORMANDT INNS. read the story of a beautiful nature when he en- countered one, and presently he allowed Charm to see how absorbing- he found its perusal. " Ah, hien — et tout cle mCme — Zola, yes, he writes terrible books; but he is a good man — a model husband and father," continued Monsieur d'Ag-- reste, addressing- the table. " AndDaudet— he adores his wife and children," added the count, as if with a determination to find only goodness in the world. " I wonder how posterity will treat them ? They'll judg-e their lives by their books, I presume." " Yes, as we judge Rabelais or Voltaire " " Or the English Shakespeare by his ' Hamlet.'" " Ah ! what would not Yoltaire have done with Hamlet ! " The countess was beginning- to wake again. " And Moliere ? What of Ms ' Misanthrope ? ' There is a finished, a human, a possible Hamlet ! a Hamlet with flesh and blood," cried out the younger count on her right. " Even Mounet- Sully could do nothing with the English Hamlet." " Ah, well, Mounet-Sully did all that was possible with the part. He made Hamlet at least a lover ! " " Ah, love ! as if, even on the stage, one be- lieved in that absurdity any longer ! " was the countess's malicious comment. "Then, if you have ceased to believe in love, why did you go so religiously to Monsieur Caro's lectures ? " cried the baroness. " Oh, that dear Caro ! He treated the passions so delicately, he handled them as if they were curiosities. One went to hear his lecture on Love THREE NORMANDT INNS. 239 as one miglit go to hear a treatise on the pecu- liarities of an extinct species," was the countess's quiet rejoinder. " One should believe in love, if only to prove one's unbelief in it," murmured the young- count on her left. " Ah, my dear comte, love, nowadays, like nat- ure, should only be used for decoration, as a bit of stage setting, or as stage scenery." "A moonlight night can be made endurable, sometimes," whispered the count. " A cJair de June that ends in lune de miel, that is the true use to which to put the charms of Diana." It was Monsieur d'Agreste's turn now to murmur in the baroness's ear. " Oh, honey, it becomes so cloying in time," in- terpolated the countess, who had overheard ; she overheard everything. She gave a wearied glance at her husband, who was still talking vigorously to Charm and Kenard. She went on softly : " It's like trying to do good. All goodness, even one's own, bores one in the end. At Basniege, for example, lovely as it is, ideallj^ feudal, and with all its towers as erect as you please, I find this modern virtue, this craze for charity, as tiresome as all the rest of it. Once you've seen that all the old women have woollen stockings, and that each cottage has fagots enough for the winter, and your role of benefactress is at an end. In Paris, at least, charity is sometimes picturesque ; poverty there is tainted wdth vice. If one be- lieved in anything, it might be worth while to begin a mission ; but as it is " 240 THREE NORMANDY INNS. " The g-ospel of life, according to you, dear comtesse, is that in modern life there is no real excitement except in studying the very best way to be rid of it," cried out Benard, from the bottom of the table. " True ; but suicide is such a coarse weapon," the lady answered, quite seriously ; " so vulgar now, since the common people have begun to use it. Besides, it puts your adversary, the world, in possession of your secret of discontent. No, no. Suicide, the invention of the nineteenth century, goes out with it. The only refined form of sui- cide is to bore one's self to death," and she smiled sweetly into the young man's eyes nearest her. " Ah, comtesse, you should not have parted so early in life with all your illusions," was Mon- sieur d'Agreste's protest across the table. " And, Monsieur d'Agreste, it isn't given to us all to go to. the ends of the earth, as you do, in search of new ones ! This friction of living doesn't wear on you as it does on the rest of us." " Ah, the ends of the earth, they are very much like the middle and the beginning of things. Man is not so very different, wherever you find him. The only real difference lies in the manner of approaching him. The scientist, for example, finds him eternally fresh, novel, inspiring ; he is a mine only as yet half-worked." Monsieur d'Ag- reste was beginning to wake up ; his eyes, hither- to, alone had been alive ; his hands had been busy, crunching his bread ; but his tongue had been silent. " Ah — h science ! Science is only another TUREE XORilAXDY IXNS. 241 anaesthetic — it merely helps to kill time. It is a hobb}', like any other," was the countess's re- joinder. " Perhaps," courteously returned Monsieur d'Ag- reste, with iDerfect sweetness of temper. "But at least, it is a hobby that kills no one else. And if of a hobby you can make a jDrinciiDle " " A principle ? " The countess contracted her brows, as if she had heard a word that did not please her. " Yes, dear lady ; the wise man lays out his life as a gardener does a garden, on the principle of selection, of order, and with a view^ to the succes- sion of the seasons. You all bemoan the dulness of life ; you, in Paris, the torpor of ennui stifles you, you cr}'. On the contrary, I would wish the days were weeks, and the weeks months. And why ? Simply because I have discovered the philosophers stone. I have grasped the secret of my era. The comedy of rank is plaj^ed out ; the life of the trifler is at an end ; all that went out with the Bourbons. Individualism is the new order. To-day a man exists simply by virtue of his ovm effort — he stands on his oa\ti feet. It is the era of the rejiublican, of the individual — sci- ence is the true republic. For us who are dis- placed from the elevation our rank gave us, work is the watchword, and it is the only battle-cry left us now. He only is strong, and therefore happy, who perceives this truth, and who marches in step with the modern movement." The serious turn given to the conversation had silenced all save the baroness. She had listened 242 THREE NOR^fA^'^DY IWNS. even more intentlj^ than the others to her friend's eloquence, nodding her head assentingly to all that he said. His philosophic reflections pro- duced as much efiect on her vivacious excitability as they might on a restless Skye-terrier. "Yes, yes — he's entirely right, is Monsieur d'Agreste ; he has got to the bottom of things. One must keep in step with modernity — one must he Jin de siiide. Comtesse, you should hunt ; there is nothing like a fox or a boar to make life worth living. It's better, infinitely better, than a pur- suit of hearts ; a boar's more troublesome than a man." " Unless you marry him," the countess inter- rupted, ending with a thrush-like laugh. "When she laughed she seemed to have a bird in her throat. " Oh, a man's heart, it's like the flag of a de- fenceless country — anyone may capture it." The countess smiled with ineffable grace into the vacant, amorous-eyed faces on either side of her, rising as she smiled. We had reached des- sert now ; the coffee was being handed round. Everyone rose ; but the countess made no move to pass out from the room. Both she and the bar- oness took from their pockets dainty cigarette- cases. " Vous permettez ? " asked the baroness, leaning over coquettishly to Monsieur d'Agreste's cigar. She accompanied her action with a charming glance, one in which all the woman in her was uppermost, and one which made Monsieur d'Agreste's pale cheeks flush like a boy's. He THREE NORMANDY INNS. 243 was a philosopher and a scientist ; but all his sci- ence and philosophy had not saved him from the barbed shafts of a certain mischievous little god. He, also, was visibly hugging his chains. The party had settled themselves in the low divans and in the Henri IV. arm-chairs; a few here and there remained, still grouped about the table, with the freedom of pose and in the comfort of attitude smoking and coffee bring with them. It was destined, however, that the hour was to be a short one. One of the grooms obsequiously knocked at the door ; he whispered in the count's ear, who advanced quickly toward him, the news that the coach was waiting ; one of the leaders " Desolated, my dear ladies — but my man tells me the coach is in readiness, and I have an imper- tinent leader who refuses to stand, when he is waiting, on anything more solid than his hind legs. Fernande, my dear, we must be on the move. Desolated, dear ladies — desolated — but it's only au revoir. We must arrange a meeting later, in Paris " The scene in the court-yard was once again gay with life and bristling with color. The coach and the dog-cart shone resplendent in the slanting sun's rays. In the brighter sunlight, the added glow in the eyes and the cheeks of the brilliantly costumed group, made both men and women seem younger and fresher than when they had ap- peared, two hours since. All were in high good humor -the wines and the talk had warmed the quick French blood. There was a merry scramble for the top coach-seats ; the two young counts ex- 244 • THREE NORMANDY INNS. chang-ed their seat in tlieir saddles for the privi- lesre of holding-, one the countess's vinaigrette, and the other, her long-handled parasol. Eenard was beside his friend De Troisac ; the horn rang out, the horses started as if stung, dashing at their bits, and in another moment the g-reat coach was being whirled beneath the archway. ''Au revoir — au revoir ! " was cried down to us from the throne - like elevation. There was a pretty waving- of hands— for even the countess's dis- like melted into sweetness as she bade us farewell. There were answering- cries from the shrieking- cockatoos, from the peacocks who trailed their tails sadly in the dust, from the cooks and the peasant serving-women who had assembled to bid the distinguished guests adieu. There was also a sweeping bow from Monsieur Paul, and a grunt of contented dismissal from Madame Le Mois. A moment after the departure of the coach the court-yard was as still as a convent cloister. It was still enough to hear the click of ma- dame's fingers, as she tapped her snuff-box. " The count doesn't see any better than he did — toujours mj/ope, lid," the old woman murmured to her son, with a pregnant wink, as she took her snuff. " C'est .sa faQon de tout voir, au contraire, ma mere," significantly returned Monsieur Paul, with his knowing smile. The mother's shrug answered the smile, as both mother and son walked in different directions — across the sunlit court. A LITTLE JOURNEY ALONG THE COAST. CAEN, BAYEUX, ST LO, COUTANCES. CHAPTEB XXm. A NIGHT IN A CAEN ATTIC. kSiii;" I HAVE always found the act of going" awaj" contagious. Who really enjoys being left behind, to mope in a corner of the world others have abandoned ? The gay company atop of the coach, as they were whirled beneath the old archway, had left discontent behind; the music of the horn, like that played by the Pied Piper, had the magic of making the feet ache to follow after. Monsieur Paul was so used to see his world go and come — to greeting it with civility, and to as- sist at its departure with smiling indifference — that the announcement of our own intention to desert the inn within a day or so, was received with un- flattering impassivity. "We had decided to take a flight along the coast — the month and the weather were at their best as aids to such adven- ture. W^e hoped to see the Fete-Dieu at Caen. Why not jDush on to Coutances, where the Fete was still celebrated with a mediaeval splendor ? 248 THREE NORMANDY INNS. From thence to the great Mont, the Mont St. Mi- chel, it was but the distance of a g-oocl steed's gal- loping — we could cover the stretch of country be- tween in a day's "driving, and catch, who knows ? — perhaps the June pilgrims climbing the Mont. " Ah, mesdames ! there are duller things in the world to endure than a glimpse of the Normandy coast and the scent of June roses ! Idylliquement belle, la cote a ce moment-ci ! " This was all the regret that seasoned Monsieur Paul's otherwise gracious and most graceful of farewells. Why cannot we all attain to an innkeep- er's altitude, as a point of view from which to look out upon the world ? Why not emulate his calm, when people who have done with us turn their backs and stalk away "? Why not, like him, count the pennies as not all the payment received when a pleasure has come which cannot be footed up in the bill % The entire company of the inn household was assembled to see us start. Not a white mouse but was on duty. The cockatoos performed the most perilous of their trapeze accomplishments as a last tribute ; the doves cooed mournfully ; the mon- keys ran like frenzied spirits along- their gratings to see the very last of us. Madame Le Mois consid- erately carried the bantam to the archway, that the lost joy of strutting might be replaced by the pride of preferment above its fellows. " Adieu, mesdames." " Au revoir — you will return — tout le monde re- vtent — Guillaume le Conquerant, like Caesar, con- quers once to hold forever— remember " THREE NORMANDY INNS. 249 From Monsieur Paul, in quieter, richer tones, came his true farewell, the one we had looked for: "The evening's in the Marmousets will seem lonely when it rains — you must g'ive us the hope of a quick return. Hope is the food of those who remain behind, as we Normans say ! " The archway darkened the sod for an instant ; the next we had passed out into the broad high- way. Jean, in his blouse, with Suzette beside him, both jolting- along in the lumbering char-d- hanc, stared out at us with a vacant-eyed curiosity. We were only two travellers like themselves, along" a dusty roadway, on our way to Caen ; we were of no particular importance in the landscape, we and our rickety little phaeton. Yet only a moment before, in the inn court-yard, we had felt ourselves to be the pivotal centre of a world whollj^ peopled with friends ! This is what comes to all men who live under the modern curse — the double curse of restlessness and that itching- for novelty, which made the old Greek longing- for the unknown deity — wdiich is also the only honest prayer of so msiuy Jin de siecle souls! Besides the dust, there were other things abroad on the high-road. What a lot of June had got into the air ! The meadows and the orchards were exuding perfumes ; the hedge-rows were so many yards of roses and wild grape-vines in blossom. The sea-smells, aromatic, pungent, floated inland to be married, in hot haste, to a perfect harem of clover and locust scents. The charm of the coast was enriched by the homely, familiar scenes of farm-house life. All the country between Dives 250 THREE NORMANDY INNS. and Caen seemed one vast farm, beautifully tilled, with its meadow-lands di]pping seaward. For several miles, perhaps, the agricultural note alone would be the dominant one, with the fields full of the old, the eternal surprise — the dawn of young summer rising over them. Down the sides of the low hills, the jDolychrome gi-ain waved be- neath the touch of the breeze like a moving sea. Many and vast were the flat-lands ; they were wide vistas of color : there were fields that were scarlet with the pomp of poppies, others tinged to the yellow of a Celestial by the feathery mus- tard ; and still others blue as a sapphire's heart from the dye of millions of bluets. A dozen small rivers — or perhaps it was only one — coiled and twisted like a cobra in sinuous action, in and out among the pasture and sea-meadows. As we passed the low, bushy banks, we heard the babel of the washerwomen's voices as they gossiped and beat their clothes on the stones. A fisherman or two gave one a hint that idling was understood here, as elsewhere, as being a fine art for those who possess the talent of never being pressed for time. A peasant had brought his horse to the bank ; the river, to both peasant and Percheron, was evidently considered as a personal possession — as are all rivers to those who live near them. There was a naturalness in all the life abroad in the fields that gave this Normandy high- road an incomparable charm. An Arcadian calm, a certain patriarchal simplicity reigned beneath the trees. Children trudged to the river bank with pails and pitchers to be filled ; women, with rakes THREE NORMANDY INNS. 251 and scythes in hand, crept down from the upper fields to season their mid-daj' meal with the cooling- whiff of the river and sea air. Children tng-g-ed at their skirts. In two feet of human life, with ker- chief tied under chin, the small hands carrying- a huge bunch of cornflowers, how much of great gravity there may be ! One such rustic sketch of the future peasant was seriously carrying its bouquet to another small edition seated in a grove of poppies ; it might have been a votive offering-. Both the children seated themselves, a very ear- nest conversation ensuing. On the hill-top, near by, the father and mother were also conversing, as they bent over their scythes. Another picture was wheeling itself along the river bank ; it was a farmer behind a huge load of green grass ; atop of the grasses two moon-faced children had laps and hands crowded Avith field flowers. Behind them the mother walked, with a rake slung over her shoulder, her short skirts and scant draperies giving to her step a noble freedom. The brush of Vollon or of Breton would have seized upon her to embody the type of one of their rustic beauties, that type whose mingled fierceness and grace make their peasants the rude goddesses of the plough. Even a rustic river wearies at last of wandering, as an occupation. Miles back we had left the sea ; even the hills had stopped a full hour ago, as if they had no taste for the rivalry of cathedral spires. Behold the river now, coursing as se- dately as the high-road, between two intermina- ble lines of poplars. Far as the eye could reach 252 THREE NORM ANDY INNS. stretclied a wide, great plain. It was flat as an old woman's palm; it was also as fertile as the city sitting in the midst of its luxuriance has been rich in history. " Cejmys est tres beau, et Caen laplusjolie ville, la plus avenante, la jylus gate, la mieux situee, les plus belles riies, les 2)lus beaux bdfinients, les plus belles eglises " There was no doubt, Charm added, as she re- peated the lady's verdict, of the opinion Madame de Sevigne had formed of the town. As we drove, some two hundred years later, through the Caen streets, the charm we found had been x^eriDet- uated, but alas ! not all of the beauty. At first we were entirely certain that Caen had retained its old loveliness ; the outskirts were tricked out with the bloom of gardens and with old houses brave in their armor of vines. The meadows and tlie great trees of the plain were partly to blame for this illusion ; they yielded their place grudgingly to the cobble-stoned streets and the height of dormer windows. To come back to the world, even to a provincial world, after having lived for a time in a corner, is certain to evoke a i)leasurable feeling of elation. The streets of Caen were by no means the liveliest we had driven into ; nor did the inhabitants, as at Yillerville, turn out en masse to welcome us. The streets, to be quite truthful, were as sedately quiet as any thoroughfares could well be, and proudly call themselves boulevards. The stony-faced gray houses presented a singularly chill frout, consid- ering their nationality. But neither the pallor of THREE NORMANDY INNS. 253 the streets nor tlieir aspect of proviueial calm had power to dampen the sense of our having returned to the world of cities. A girl issuing from a door- way with a netted veil drawn tightly over her rosy cheeks, and the curve of a Parisian bodice, imme- diately invested Caen with a metropolitan impor- tance. The most courteous of innkeepers was bending over our carriage-door. He was desolated, but his inn was already full ; it was crowded to reple- tion with people ; surely these ladies knew it was the week of the races % Caen was as crowded as the inn ; at night many made of the open street their bed ; his own court-yard was as filled with men as with farm- wagons. It was altogether hopeless as a situation; as a welcome into a strange cit}^, I have experienced none more arctic. I had, however, forgotten that I was travelling with a conqueror; that when Charm smiled she did as she pleased with her world. The innkeeper was only a man ; and since Adam, when has any member of that sex been known to say " No " to a pretty woman ? This French Adam, when Charm parted her lips, showing the snow of her teeth, found himself suddenly, miraculouslj^ endowed with a fragment of memory. Tiens, he had for- gotten ! that very morning a corner of the attic — nn hold du iott — had been vacated. If these ladies did not mind mounting to a greniei' — an attic, com- fortable, although still only an attic ! The one dormer window was on a level with the roof-tops. We had a whole company of " belles voisines," a trick of neighborliness in windows the 254 THREE NORMANDY INNS. quick French wit, years ago, was swift to name. These " neighbors " were of every order and pat- tern. All the world and his mother-in-law were gone to the races; — and yet every window was playing a different scene in the comedy of this life in the sky. Who does not know — and love — a French window, the higher up in the world of air the better % There are certain to be plants, rows of them in pots, along the wide sill ; one can count on a bullfinch or a parrot, as one can on the hebes that appear to be born on purj^ose to poke their fingers in the cages ; there is certain also to be another cage hanging above the flowers — one filled with a fresh lettuce or a cabbage-leaf. There is usually a snowy curtain, fringed ; just at the parting of the draperies an old woman is always seated, with chin and nose-tip meeting, her bent figure rounding over the square of her knitting-needles. It was such a window as this that made us feel, before our bonnets were laid aside, that Caen was glad to see us. The window directly opposite was wide open. Instead of one there were half a dozen songsters aloft ; we were so near their cages that the cat-bird whistled, to call his master and mistress to witness the intrusion of these stran- gers. The master brought a hot iron along— he was a tailor and was just in the act of pressing a seam. His wife was scraping carrots, and she tucked her bowl between her knees as she came to stand and gaze across. A cry rose up within the low room. Some one else wished to see the new- comers. The tailor laid aside his iron to lift THREE NORMANDY INNS. 255 proudly, far out beyond the cag-es, the fattest, rosiest offspring- that ever was born in an attic. The babe smote its hands for pure joy. We were better than a broken doll — we were alive. The family as a family accepted us as one among- them. The man smiled, and so did his wife. Presently both nodded g-raciously, as if, understanding the cause of our intrusion on their aerial privacy, they wished to present us with the compliment of their welcome. The manners among these g-arret-win- dows, we murmured, were really uncommonly g"ood. " Bonjour, mesdames I " It was the third time the woman had passed, and we were still at the window. Her husband left his seam to join her. " Ces dames are not accustomed to such heights — a ces hauteurs — peuf-etre ? " The ladies in truth were not, unhappily, always so well lodged ; from this height at least one could hope to see a city. " Ah ! ha ! c'est gai par ici, n'est-ce pas ? One has the sun all to one's self, and air ! Ah ! for fresh- ness one must climb to an attic in these days, it appears." It was impossible to be more contented on a height than was this family of tailors ; for when not cooking, or washing, or tossing the " hebe " to the birds, the wife stitched and stitched all her husband cut, besides taking a turn at the family socks. Part of this contentment came, no doubt, from the variety of shows and amusements with which the family, as a family, were perpetually sup- plied. For workers, there were really too many so- 256 THREE NORMANDY INNS. cial distractions abroad in the streets ; it was almost impossible for the two to meet all the demands on their time. Now it was the jingle of a horse's bell-collar ; the tailor, between two snips at a col- lar, must see who was stopping at the hotel door. Later a horn sounded ; this was only the fish-ven- der, the wife merely bent her head over the flow- ers to be quite sure. Next a trumpet, clear and strong, rang its notes up into the roof-eaves ; this was something bebe must see and hear — all three were bending at the first throbbing touch of that music on the still air, to see whence it came. Thus you see, even in the provinces, in a French street, something is quite certain to happen ; it all de- l^ends on the choice one makes in life of a window — of being rightly placed — whether or not one finds life dull or amusing. This tailor had the talent of knowing where to stand, at life's corner — for him there was a ceaseless procession of excite- ments. It may be that our neighbor's talent for seeing was catching. It is certain that no city we had ever before looked out ujDon had seemed as crowded with sights. The whole history of Caen was writ in stone against the blue of the sky. Here, below us, sat the lovely old town, seated in the grasses of her plain. Yonder was her canal, as an artery to keep her pulse bounding in response to the sea ; the ship-masts and the drooping sails seemed strange companions for the great trees and the old garden walls. Those other walls William built to cincture the city, Froissart found three centu- ries later so amazingly " strong, full of di-apery and THREE NORMANDY INNS. 257 merchandise, rich citizens, noble dames, damsels, and fine churches," for this girdle of the Conquer- or's great bastions the eye looks in vain. But Will- iam's vow still proclaims its fulfilment ; the spire of I'Abbaye aux Hommes, and the Komanesque towers of its twin, I'Abbaye aux Dames, face each other, as did William and Mathilde at the altar — that union that had to be expiated by the penance of building these stones in the air. Commend me to an attic window to put one in sympathetic relations with cathedral spires ! At this height we and they, for a part of their flight upward, at least, were on a common level — -and we all know what confidences come about from the accident of propinquity. They seemed to assure us as never before when sitting at their feet, the difficulties they had overcome in climbing heaven- ward. Every stone that looked down upon the city wore this look of triumph. In the end it was this Caen in the air — it was this aerial city of finials, of towers, of laeaked spires, of carved chimneys, of tree-tops over which the clouds rode ; of a plain, melting — like a sea — into the mists of the horizon ; this high, bright region peopled with birds and pigeons ; of a sky tender, translucent, and as variable as human emotions ; of an air that was rapture to breathe, and of nights in which the stars were so close they might almost be handled ; it was this free, hilly city of the roofs that is still the Caen I remember best. There were other features of Caen that were good to see, I also remember. Her street expres- sion, on the whole, was very pleasing. It was 258 THREE KORMANDY INNS. singularly calm and composed, even for a city in a plain. But the quiet came, doubtless, from its pop- ulation being away at the races. The few towns- people who, for obvious reasons, were stay-at- homes, were uncommonly civil ; Caen had evidently preserved the tradition of g-ood manners. An army of cripples wfts in waiting- to point the way to the church doors ; a regiment of beggars was within them, with nets cast already for the catch- ing of the small fry of our pennies. In the gay, geranium-lit garden circling the side walls of St. Pierre there were many legless soldiers ; the old houses we went to see later on in the high street seemed, by contrast, to have survived other wars, those of the Directory and the Mountain, with a really scandalous degree of good fortune. On our way to a still greater church than St. Pierre, to the Abbaye aux Dames, that, like the queen who built her, sits on the throne of a hill — on our way thither we passed innumerable other ancient man- sions. None of these were down in the guide- books ; they were, therefore, invested with the deeper charm of personal discovery. Once away from the little city of the shops, the real Caen came out to greet us. It was now a gray, sad, walled town ; behind the walls, level-browed Fran- cis I. windows looked gravely over the tufts of ver- dure ; here was an old gatewaj^ ; there what might once have been a portcullis, now only an arched wreath of vines ; still beyond, a group of severe- looking mansions with great iron bound windows presented the front of miniature fortresses. And everywhere gardens and gardens. THREE NORMANDY INNS. 259 Turn where you would, you would only turn to face verdure, foliage, and masses of flowers. The hig-h walls could neither keep back the odors nor hide the luxuriance of these Caen g-ardens. These must have been the streets that bewitched Madame de Sevigne. Through just such a maze of foliage Charlotte Corday has also walked, again and again, with her wonderful face aflame with her great pur- pose, before the purpose ripened into the dagger thrust at Marat's bared breast — that avenging Angel of Beauty stabbing the Beast in his bath. Auber, with his Anacreontic ballads in his young head, would seem more fittingly framed in this old Caen that runs up a hill-side. But women as beautiful as Marie Stuart and the Corday can deal safely in the business of assassination, the world will al- ways continue to aureole their pictures with a gar- land of roses. The Abbaye on its hill was reached at last. All Caen lay below us ; from the hillside it flowed as a sea rolls away from a great ship's sides. Down below, far below, as if buttressing the town that seemed rushing away recklessly to the waste of the plains, stands the Abbaye's twin-brother, the Aux Hommes. Plains, houses, roof - tops, spires, all were swimming in a sea of golden light ; nothing seemed quite real or solid, so vast was the prospect and so ethereal was the medium through which we saw it. Perhaps it was the great con- trast between that shimmering, unstable city be- low, that reeked and balanced itself like some hu- man creature whose dazzled vision had made its footing insecure — it may be that it was this note 260 THREE NORMANDY INNS. of contrast whicli myested this vast structure be- stridiug the hill, with such astonishing- grandeur. I have known few, if any, other churches produce so instantaneous an effect of a beauty that was one with austerit}". This great Norman is more Puri- tan than French ; it is Norman Gothic with a Pu- ritan severitJ^ The sound of a deep sonorous music took us quickly within. It was as mysterious a music as ever haunted a church aisle. The vast and snowy interior was as deserted as a Presbyterian church on a week-day. Yet the sound of the rich, strong voices filled all the place. There was no sound of tingling accompaniment : there was no organ pipe, even, to add its sensuous note of color. There was only the sound of the voices, as they swelled, and broke, and began afresh. The singing went on. It was a slow "plain chant." Into the great arches the sonorous chanting beat upon the ear with a rhythmic perfection that, even without the lovely flavor of its sweetness, would have made a beauty of its own. In this still and holy place, with the company of the stately Norman arches soaring aloft — beneath the sombre glory of the giant aisles — the austere simplicity of this chant made the heart beat, one knew not why, and the eyes moisten, one also knew not why. We had followed the voices. They came, we found, from within the choir. A j)attering of steps proclaimed we were to go no farther. " Not there, my ladies — step this waj^ one only enters the choir by going into the hospital." TERES NORMANDY INNS. 261 The voice was low and sweet ; the smile, a spark of divinity set in a woman's face ; and the whole was clothed in a nun's garb. We followed the fluttering- robes ; we passed out once more into the sunlit parvis. We spoke to the smile and it answered : yes, the choir was reserved for the Sisters — they must be able to ap- proach it from the convent and the hospital ; it had always, since the time of Mathilde, been re- served for the nuns ; would we pass this way ? The way took us into an open vaulted passage, past a grating where sat a white-capped Sister, past a group of girls and boys carr3dng wreaths and garlands — they were making ready for the Ftte-Dieu, our nun explained — past, at the last, a series of corridors through which, faintly at first, and then sweeter and fuller, there struck once more upon our ears the sounds of the deep and resonant chanting. The black gown stopped all at once. The nun was standing in front of a green curtain. She lifted it. This was what we saw. The semicircle of a wide apse. Behind, rows upon rows of round arches. Below the arches, in the choir-stalls, a long half-circle of stately figures. The figures were draped from head to foot. "\Mien they bent their heads not an inch of flesh was visible, except a few hands here and there that had escaped the long, wide sleeves. All these figures were motion- less ; they were as immobile as statues ; occasion- all}^ at the end of a " Gloria," all turned to face the high altar. At the end of the " Amen " a cloud of black veils swept the ground. Then for 262 THREE NORMANDY INNS. several measures of the chant the figures were again as marble. In each of the low, round arches, a stately woman, tall and nobly planned, draped like a goddess turned saint, stood and chanted to her Lord. Had the Norman builders carved these women, ages ago, standing about Mathilde's tomb, those ancient sculptures could not have embodied, in more ideal image, the type of womanly renun- ciation and of a saint's fervor of exaltation. We left them, with the rich chant still full upon their lips, with heads bent low, calm as graven images. It was only the bloom oh a cheek, here and there, that made one certain of the youth en- tombed within these nuns' garb. " Happy, mesdames ? Oh, mais tres lieui^euscs, toutes — there are no women so happy as we. See how they come to us, from all the country around. En voild line — did you remark the pretty one, Avith the book, seated, all in white ? She is to be a full Sister in a month. She comes from a noble fam- ily in the south. She was here one day, she saw the life of the Sisters, of us all working here, among the poor soldiers — elle a vu pa, et pour tout de bon, s'est donnee d Dieu ! " The smile of our nun was rapturous. She was proving its source. Once more we saw the young countess who had given herself to her God. An hour later, when we had reached the hospital wards, her novice's robes were trailing the ground. She was on her knees in the very middle of the great bare room. She was repeating the office of the hour, aloud, with clasped hands and uplifted head. On her lovely young face there was the THREE NORMANDY INNS. 263 g-low of a divine ecstasy. All the white faces from the long- rows of the white beds wei^e bending' toward her ; to one even in all fulness of strength and health that girlish figure, praying beside the g-reat vase of the snowy daisies, with the glow that irradiated the sweet, pure face, might easily enough have seemed an angel's. As companions for our tour of the grounds we had two young Englishmen. Both eyed the nuns in the distance of the corridors and the gardens with the sharpened glances all men level at the women who have renounced them. It is a mys- tery no man ever satisfactorily fathoms. " Queer notion, this, a lot of women shutting themselves up," remarked the younger of the two. " In England, now, they'd all go in for being old maids, drinking tea and coddling cats, you know." " I wonder which are the happier, your coun- trywomen or these Sisters, who, in renouncing- the world devote their lives to serving it. See, over yonder ! " and I nodded to a scene beneath the wide avenue of the limes. Two tall Augus- tines were supporting a crippled old man ; they were showing him some fresh g"arden-beds. Be- yond was a gayer group. Some of the lay sisters were tugging at a huge basket of clothes, fresh from the laundry. Running across the grass, with flying draperies, two nuns, laughing as they ran, each striving to outfoot the other, were has- tening to their rescue. " They keep their bloom, running- about like that ; only healthy nuns I ever saw." 264 THREE NORMANDY INNS. " That's because they have something better than cats to coddle." " Ah, ha ! that's not bad. It's a slow suicide, all the same. But here we are, at the top ; it's a fine outlook, is it not % " The young man panted as he reached the top of the Maze, one of the chief glories of the old Abbaye grounds. He had a fair and sensitive face ; a weak product on the whole, he seemed, compared with the noblj^-built, vigorous-bodied nuns crowding the choir- stalls yonder. Instead of that long, slow suicide, surely these women should be doing their greater work of reproducing a race. Even an open-air cell seems to me out of place in our century. It will be entirely out of fashion in time, doubtless, as the mediaeval cell has gone along with the old castle life, whose princeh" mode of doing things made a nunnery the only respectable hiding-place for the undow- ered daughters. As we crept down into Caen, it was to find it thick with the dust of twilight. The streets were dense with other things besides the thickened light. The Caen world was crowding* homeward; all the boulevards and side-streets were alive with a moving throng of dust\% noisy, wearj^ holiday- makers. The town was abroad in the streets to hear the news of the horses, and to learn the his- tory of the betting. Although we had gone to church instead of doing the races, many of those who had jieopled the gay race-track came back to us. The table d'hote, at our inn that night, was as noisy as a THREE NORMANDY INNS. 265 Parisian cafe. It Avas scarcely as discreet, I should say. On our way to our attic that night, the little corridors made us a really amazing- number of confidences. It was strange, but all the shoes appeared to have come in pairs of twos. Never was there such a collection of boots in couples. Strange it was, also, to see how many little secrets these rows of candid shoe-leather disclosed. Here a pert, coquettish pair of ties were having as little in common as possible with the stout, somewhat clumsy walking-boots next them. In the two just beyond, at the next door, how the delicate, slender buttoned kids leaned over, floppingly, to rest on the coarse, yet strong, hobnailed dumpers ! Shabbier and shabbier grew the shoes, as we climbed upward. With each jDair of stairs we seemed to have left a rung in the ladder of fortune behind. But even the very poorest in pocket had brought his little extravagance with him to the races. The only genuine family party had taken re fuge, like ourselves, in the attic. At the very next door to our own. Monsieur, Madame, et Bebe proclaimed, by the casting of their dusty shoes, that they also, like the rest of the world, had come to Caen to see the horses run. CHAPTER XXIV. A DAY AT BAYEUX AND ST. LO. Caen seated iu its plain, wearing- its crown of stee- i pies — this was our last glimpse of the beautiful city. Our way to Bayeux was strewn thick with these Normandy jewels ; with towns smaller than Caen ; with Gothic belfries ; with ruined priories, and with castles, stately even when tottering in decay. When the last castle was lost in a thicket, we discovered that our iron horse was stopping in liie very middle of a field. If the guard had snouted out the name of any Ameri- can cit}^ built overnight, on a AVestern prairie, we should have felt entirely at home in this meadow ; we should have known any clearing, with grass and daisies, was a very finished evidence of civili- zation at high pressure. But a lane as the beginning of a cathedral town! Evidently Bayeux has had a Euskinian dread of steam -whistles, for this ancient seat of bish- ops has succeeded in retaining the charms of THREE NORMANDY INNS. 267 its old rustic approaches, whatever else it may- have sacrificed on the altar of modernness. An harangue, at the door of the quaint old Normandy omnibus, by the driver of the same, was proof that the lesson of good oratory, ad- ministered by generations of bishops, had not been lost on the Bayeux inhabitants. Two re- bellious English tourists furnished the text for the driver's sermon ; they were showing, with all the naive pride of pedestrians, their intention of footing the distance bet^veen the station and the cathech'al. This was an indejjendence of spirit no Norman could endure to see. AMiat ? these gen- tlemen proposed to walk, in the sun, through clouds of dust, when here was a carriage, with ladies for companions, at their command"? The coach had come doTVTi the hill on purpose to con- duct Messieurs les voyageurs ; how did these gen- tlemen suppose apere de famiUe was to make his living if the fashion of walking came in ? And the rusty red vest was thumbed by the gnarled hand of the father, who was also an orator ; and a high-peaked hat swept the ground before the hard-hearted gentlemen. All the tragedy of the situation had come about from the fact that the tourists, also, had gotten themselves up in cos- tume. AVhen two fine youths have risen early in the day to put on checked stockings, leggings, russet walking-shoes, and a jjlaited coat with a belt, such attire is one to be lived up to. Once in knickerbockers and a man's getting into an omnibus is really too ignominious ! With such a road before two sets of such well-shaped calves — • 268 XnREE NORMANDY INNS. a road all shaped and graded — this, indeed, would be flying- in the face of a veritable providence of bishop-builders intent on maintaining pastoral effects. The knickerbockers relentlessly strode onward ; the driver had addressed himself to hearts of stone. But he had not j'et exhausted his quiver of appeal. Englishmen walk, well ! there's no accounting for the taste of Britons who are also still half savages ; but even a barbarian must eat. Half-way up the hill, the rattle of the loose- jointed vehicle came to a dead stop. With great gravity the guard descended from his seat ; this latter he lifted to take from the entrails of the old vehicle a handful of handbills. He, the horse, the omnibus, and we, all waited for, what do you suppose ? To besj)rinkle the walking English- men as they came within rang-e with a shower of circulars announcing" that at " inidi, cJiez Nigaud, il y aura un dtjeuner chaud." The driver turned to look in at the window — and to nod as he turned — he felt so certain of our sympathy ; had he not made sure of them at last? A group of gossamer caps beneath a row of sad, gray-faced houses was our Bayeux welcome. The faces beneath the caps watched our approach with the same sobriety as did the old houses — they had the antique Norman seriousness of aspect. The noise we made with the clatter and rattle of our broken-down vehicle seemed an impertinence, in the face of such severe countenances. We might haA'e been entering a deserted city, except for THREE NORMANDY INNS. 269 the i^resence of these motionless Normandy fig-- ures. The cathedral met us at the threshold of the city : magnificent, majestic, a hug-e gray mountain of stone, but severe in outline, as if the Norman builders had carved on the vast surface of its fayade an imprint of their own g-rave earnestness. We were somewhat early for the hot breakfast at Nigaud's. There was, however, the appetizing- smell of soup, with a flourishing- pervasiveness of onion in the pot, to sustain the vigor of an appe- tite whetted by a start at dawn. The knicker- bockers came in with the omelette. But one is not a Briton on his travels for nothing- ; one does not leave one's own island to be the dupe of French inu keepers. The smell of the soup had not departed with our empty plates, and the voice of the walkers was not of the softest when they demanded their rights to be as odorous as we. There is always a curiously ag-reeable sensa- tion, to an American, in seeing- an Englishman angry ; to g-et angry in public is one thing we do badly ; and in his cup of wrath our British brother is sublime — he is so superbly unconscious — and so contemptuous — of the fact that the world sometimes finds anger ridiculous. At the other end of the long and narrow table two other travellers were seated, a man and a woman. But food, to them, it was made mani- festly evident, was a matter of the most supreme indifterence. They were at that radiant moment of life when eating- is altogether too gross a form of indulgence. For these two were at the most 270 THREE NORMANDY INNS. interesting- period of French courtship — just after the wedding- ceremony, when, with the priest's blessing-, had come the consent of their workl and of tradition to their making- the other's acquaint- ance. This provincial bride and her husband of a day were beginning-, as all rustic courting- begins, by a furtive holding of hands ; this particular cou^jle, in view of our proximity and their own mutual embarrassment, had recourse to the subterfuge of desperate lunges at the other's fing-ers, beneath the table-cloth. The screen, as a screen, did not work. It deceived no one — as the bride's pale-gray dress and her flowery bonnet also deceived no one — save herself. This latter, in certain ranks of life, is the bride's travelling- costume, the world over. And the world over, it is worn by the recently wedded with the profound conviction that in donning- it they have discovered the most complete of all disguises. This bride and groom were obviously in the first rapture of mutual discovery. The honey in their moon was not fresher than their views of the other's tastes and predilections. " Ah — ah — you like to travel quickly — to see everything, to take it all in in a g-ulp — so do I, and then to digest at one's leisure." The bride was entirely of this mind. Only, she murmured, there were other things one must not do too quickly — one must g-o slow in matters of the heart — to make quite sure of all the stages. But her husband was at her throat, that is, his eyes'and lips were, as he answered, so that all the table might partake of his emotion— "No, no, the THREE NORMANDY INNS. 271 quicker the heart feels the quicker love comes. Tiens, voyons, mon amie, toi-meme, tu m'as conjie " — and the rest was lost in the bride's ear. Apparently we were to have them, these brides, for the rest of our journey, in all stages and of all ages ! Thus far none others had appeared as de- termined as were these two honey-mooners, that all the world should share their bliss. They were cracking filberts with their disengaged fingers, the other two being closely interlocked, in quite scandalous openness, when we left them. That was the only form of excitement that greeted us in the quiet Bayeux streets. The very street urchins invited repose ; the few we saw were seated sedately on the threshold of their own door - steps, frequent sallies abroad into this quiet city having doubtless convinced them of the futility of all sorties. The old houses wore their carved fagades as old ladies wear rich lace — they had reached the age when the vanity of per- sonal adornment had ceased to inflate. The great cathedral, towering above the tranquil town, wore a more conscious air ; its significance was too great a contrast to the quiet city asleep at its i'eet. In these long, slow centuries the towers had grown to have the air of protectors. The famous tapestries we went to see later, might easily enough have been worked yesterday-, in any one of the old mediaeval houses ; Mathilde and her hand-maidens would find no more — not so much — to distract and disturb them now in this still and tranquil town, with its sad gray streets and its moss-grown door-steps, as they must in 272 THREE NORM AN Dy INNS. those earlier bustling- centuries of the Conqueror. Even then, when Normandy was only beginning its career of importance among the great French provinces, Bayeux was already old. She was far more Norse then than Norman; she was Scandinavian to the core ; even her nobles spoke in harsh Norse syllables; they were as little French as it was possible to be, and yet g-overn a people. Mathilde, when she toiled over her frame, like all great writers, was doubtless quite unconscious she was producing a masterpiece. She was, how- ever, in point of fact, the very first among the great French realists. No other French writer has written as graphically as she did with her needle, of the life and customs of their day. That long scroll of tajjestry, for truth and a naive perfection of sincerity — where will you find it equalled or even approached ? It is a rude Homeric epic ; and I am not quite certain that it ought not to rank higher than even some of the more famous epics of the world — since Mathilde had to create the mould of art into which she poured her story. For who had thought before her of making wom- en's stitches write or paint a great historical event, crowded with homely details which now are dubbed archaeological veracities ? Bayeux and its tapestry ; its grave company of antique hovises ; its glorious cathedral dominat- ing the whole — what a loveh^ old background against which poses the eternal modernness of the young noon sun ! The history of Bayeux is com- monly given in a paragraph. Our morning's walk THREE NORMANDY INNS. 273 had proved to us it was the kind of town that does more to re-c}-eate the historic past than all the pages of a Guizot or a Challamel. The bells that were ringing out the hour of high- noon from the cathedral towers at Baj-eux were making the heights of St. L6, two hours later, as noisy as a village fair. The bells, for rivals, had the clatter of women's tongues. I think I never, before or since, have beheld so lively a company of washerwomen as were beating their clothes in Vire Eiver. The river bends jDrettily just below the St. Lo heights, as if it had gone out of its way to courtesy to a hill. But even the waters, in their haste to be polite, could not course beneath the great bridge as swiftly as ran those women's tongues. There were a good hundred of them at work beneath the washing - sheds. Now, these sheds, anywhere in France, are really the open- air club - room of the French peasant woman ; the whole dish of the village gossip is hung out to dry, having previously been well soused and aired, along with the blouses and the coarse che- mises. The town of St. L6 had evidentl}" fur- nished these club members of the washing-stones with some fat dish of gossip — the heads were as close as currants on a stem, as they bent in groups over the bright waters. They had told it all to the stream : and the stream rolled the vol- ume of the talk along as it carried along also the gay, sparkling reflections of the life and the toil that bent over it — of the myriad reflections of those moving, bare-armed figures, of the brilliant kerchiefs, of the wet blue and gray jerseys, and of 274 THREE NORMANDY INNS. the long prismatic line of tlie damp, motley-hued clothes that were fluttering in the wind. The bells' clangor was an assurance that some- thing was happening on top of the hill. Just what happened was as altogether pleasing a spec- tacle, after a long and arduous climb up a hillside, as it has often been my good fortune to encounter. The portals of the church of Notre-Dame were wide open. Within, as we looked over the shoul- ders of the townspeople who, like us, had come to see what the bells meant by their ringing, within the church there was a rich and sombre dusk ; out of this dusk, indistinctly at first, lit by the tremu- lous flicker of a myriad of candles, came a line of white -veiled heads; then another of young boys, with faces as pale as the nosegays adorning their brand-new black coats; next the scarlet- robed choristers, singing, and behind them still others swinging incense that thickened the dusk. Suddenly, like a vision, the white veils passed out into the sunlight, and we saw that the faces be- neath the veils were young and comely. The faces were still alternately lighted by the flare of the burning tapers and the glare of the noon sun. The long procession ended at last in a straggling group of old peasants with fine tremulous mouths, a- tremble with pride and with feeling ; for here they were walking in full sight of their town, in their holiday coats, with their knees treacherously unsteady from the thrill of the organ's thunder and the sweetness of the choir-boys' singing. Whether it was a pardon, or a fete, or a first communion, we never knew. But the town of St. THREE NORM AND T INNS. 275 L6 is ever gloriously lighted, for ns, with a nimbus of young heads, such as encircled the earlier ma- donnas. After such a goodly spectacle, the rest of the town was a tame morsel. We took a parting sniff of the incense still left in the eastern end of the church's nave ; there was a bit of good glass in a window to reward us. Outside the church, on the west from the Petite Place, was a wide outlook over the lovely vale of the Yire, with St. L6 itself twist- ing and turning in graceful postures down the hill- side. On the same prospect two kings have looked, and before the kings a saint. St. L6 or St. Lau- dus himself, who gave his name to the town, must, in the sixth century, have gazed on virgin forests stretching away from the hill far as the eye could reach. Charlemagne, three hundred years later, in his turn, found the site a goodly one, one to tempt men to worship the Creator of such beauty, for here he founded the great Abbey of St. Croix, long since gone with the monks who peopled it. Louis XL, that mystic wearing the warrior's helmet, set his seal of approval on the hill, by sending the famous glass yonder in the cathedral, when the hill and the St. L6 people beat the Bre- tons who had come to capture both. Like saint, and kings, and monks, and warriors, we in our turn crej)t down the hill. For we also were done with the town. CHAPTEE XXV. A DINNER AT COUTANCES. The way from St. L6 to Cou- i tances is a pleasant way. f There is no map of the country that will give you even a hint of its true character, any more than from a photog-rajih you can hope to gain an in- _ t:. - sight into the moral qual- ities of a pretty woman. Here, at last, was the ideal Normandy landscape. It was a country with a savage look — a savage that had been trained to follow the plough. Even in its color it had retained the true barbarians' in- stinct for a good primary. Here were no melting- yellow mustard-fields, nor flame-lit poppied mead- ows, nor blue-bells lifting their baby-blue eyes out of the grain. All the land was green. Fields, meadows, forests, plains — all were green, green, green. The features of the landscape had changed with this change in coloring. The slim, fragile grace of slim trees and fragile cliffs had been re- placed by trees of heroic proportions, and by out- lines nobly rounded and full — like the breasts of a mother. The whole country had an astonishing THREE NORMANDY INNS. 277 look of vigor — of the vigor -svliicli comes with rude strength ; and it had that charm which goes with all untamed beauty— the power to sting one into a sense of agitated enjoyment. Even the farm-houses had been suddenly trans- formed into fortresses. Each one of the groups of the farm enclosures had its outer walls, its minia- ture turrets, and here and there its rounded bas- tions. Each farm, apparently, in the olden days had been a citadel unto itself. The Breton had been a very troublesome neighbor for many a long century ; ever}^ ploughman, until a few hun- dred years ago, was quite likely to turn soldier at a second's notice — every true Norman must look to his own sword to defend his hearth-stone. Such is the story those stone turrets that cap the farm walls tell you — each one of these turrets was an open lid through which the farmer could keep his eye on Brittany. Meanwhile, along the roads as we rushed swiftly by, a quieter life was passing. The farm wagons were jogging peacefully along on a high-road as smooth as a fine lady's palm — and as white. The horses were harnessed one before the other, in in- terminable length of line. Sometimes six, some- times eight, even so many asten, marched with great gravity, and with that majestic dignity only pos- sible to full-blooded Percherons, one after the other. They each wore a saddle-cloth of blue sheep- skin. On their mottled haunches this bit of color made their polished coats to gleam like unto a liz- ards' skin. Meanwhile, also, we were nearing Coutances. 278 THREE NORMANDY INNS. The farm-liouses were fortresses no long-er ; the thatched roofs were one once more with the green of the hig-h-roads ; for even in the old days there was a great walled city set ui? on a hill, to which refuge all the people about for miles could turn for protection. A city that is set on a hill ! That for me is commonly recommendation enough. ►5uch a city, so set, promises at the very least the dual distinction of looking up as well as looking down; it is the nearer heaven, and just so much the farther removed from earth. Coutances, for a city with its head in the air, was surprisingly friendly. It went out of its way to make us at home. At the very station, down below in the plain, it had sent the most loquaci- ous of coach-drivers to put us in immediate touch with its present interests. All the city, as the coarse blue blouse, flourishing its whip, took pains to explain, was abroad in the fields; the forests, tiens, down j' onder through the trees, we could see for ourselves how the young people were making the woods as crowded as a ball-room. The city, as a city, was stripping the land and the trees bare — it would be as bald as a new-born babe by the morrow. But then, of a certainty, we also had come for the fete — or, and here a puzzled look of doubt beclouded the provincial's eyes — might we, perchance, instead, have come for the trial? Mais non, pas ga, these ladies had never come for that, since they did not even know the court was sitting, now, this very instant, at Cou- tances. And — sapristi ! but there was a trial go- THREE NORMANDY INNS. 279 iug- on — one to make the blood curdle ; he himself h»^d not slept, the rustic coachman added, as he shivered beneath his blouse, all the night before — the blood had run so cold in his veins. The horse and the road were all the while going- up the hill. The road was easily one that might have been the path of warriors ; the walls, still loftj^ on the side nearest the town, bristled with a turret or a bastion to remind us Coutances had not been set on a hill for mere purposes of beauty. The ramparts of the old fortifications had been turned into a broad promenade. Even as we jolted past, beneath the great breadth of the trees' verdure we could see how gloriously the prospect widened— the country below reaching out to the horizon like the waters of a sea that end only in indefiniteness. The city itself seemed to grow out of the walls and the trees. Here and there a few scattered houses grouped themselves as if meaning to start a street ; but a maze of foliage made a straight line impossible. Finally a large group of buikl- ings, with severe stone faces, took a more serious plunge away from the vines ; they had shaken themselves free and were soon soberly ranging themselves into the parallel lines of narrow city streets. It was a pleasant surprise to find that, for once, a Norman blouse had told the truth ; for here were the people of Coutances coming up from the fields to prove it. In all these narrow streets a great multitude of people were passing us : some were laden with vines, others with young forest 280 THREE NORMANDY INNS. trees, and still others with rude garlands of flow- ers. The peasant women's faces, as the bent fig- ures staggered beneath a young fir-tree, were pur- ple, but their smiles were as gay as the wild flowers with which the stones were thickly strewn. Their words also were as rough : " Diantre — mats c'e lourd ! " " E-hen, e tot, tu n' hougeons jmint, toil " And the nearest fir-tree carrier to our carriage- wheels cracked a swift blow over the head of a vine-bearer, who being but an infant of two, could not make time with the swift foot of its mother. The smell of the flowers was everywhere. Fir- trees perfumed the air. Every doorstep was a garden. The courtyards were alive with the squat figures of capped maidens, wreathing and twisting greens and garlands. And in the streets there was such a noise as was never before heard in a city on a hill-top. For Coutances was to hold its great fete on the morrow. It was a relief to turn in from the noise and hubbub to the bright courtyard of our inn. The brightness thereof, and of the entire establish- ment, indeed, aj^peared to find its central source in the brilliant eyes of our hostess. Never was an inn-keeper gifted with a vision at once so om- niscient and so efi'ulgent. Those eyes were every- where ; on us, on our bags, our bonnets, our boots ; they divined our wants, and answered beforehand our unuttered longings. We had come far ? the eyes asked, burning a hole through our gossamer evasions ; from Paris, perhaps — a glance at our THREE NORMANDY INNS. 281 bonnets proclaimed the 63-68 knew all ; we were here for the ftte, to see the bishop on the mor- row ; that was well ; we were going- on to the Mont ; and the eyes scented the shortness of our stay by a swift glance at our luggage. " Niuiicro quafre, an troisieme ! " There was no appeal possible. The eyes had penetrated the disguise of our courtesy ; we were but travellers of a night ; the top story was built for such as we. But such a top story, and such a chamber therein ! A great, wide, low room ; beams deep and black, with here and there a brass bit hang- ing- ; waxed floors, polished to mirrory perfection ; a great bed clad in snowy di-aperies, with a snow- white duvet of gigantic proportions. The walls were gray with lovely bunches of faded rosebuds flung abroad on the soft surface ; and to give a quaint and antique note to the whole, over the chimney was a bit of worn tapestry with formid- able dungeon, a Xorman keep in the background, and well up in front, a stalwart young master of the hounds, with dogs in leash, of the heavy Xor- man type of bulging muscle and high cheek- bones. Altogether, there were worse fates in the world than to be travellers of a night, with the destiny of such a room as part of the fate. When we descended the steep, narrow spiral of steps to the dining-room, it was to flnd the eyes of our hostess brighter than ever. The noise in the streets had subsided. It was long after dusk, and Coutances was evidently a good provincial. 282 THREE NORMANDY INNS. But in the gay little dining-room there was an as- tonishing bustle and excitement. The ftte and the court had brought a crowd of diners to the inn-table ; when we were all seated we made quite a company at the long, narrow board. The candles and lamps lit up any number of Vandyke-pointed beards, of bald heads, of loosely-tied cravats, and a few matronly bosoms straining at the buttons of silk holiday gowns. For the Ftic-Dieu had brought visitors besides ourselves from all the country round ; and then " a first communion is like a marriage, all the rela^ tives must come, as doubtless we knew," was a bald-head's friendly beginning of his soup and his talk, as we took our seats beside him. With the appearance of the ^yofage conversation, like a battle between foes eager for contest, had immediately engaged itself. The setting of the table and the air of companionship pervading the establishment were aiders and abettors to imme- diate intercourse. Nothing could be prettier than the Caen bowls with their bunches of purple phlox and spiked blossoms. Even a metropolitan table might have taken a lesson from the perfec- tion of the lighting of the long board. In order that her guests should feel the more entirely at home, our brilliant-eyed hostess came in with the soup ; she took her place behind it at the head of the table. It was evident the merchants from Cherbourg who had come as witnesses to the trial, had had many a conversational bout before now with mad- ame's ready wit. So had two of the town lawyers. THREE NORMANDY INNS. 283 Even the commercial gentlemen, for once, were experiencing a brief moment of armed suspense, before tliey flung tliemselves into tlie arena of talk. At first, or it would never have been in the provinces, this talk at the long table, everj'one broke into speech at once. There was a flood of words ; one's sense of hearing was stunned by the noise. Gradually, as the cider and the thin red wine were passed, our neighbors gave digestion a chance ; the din became less thick with words ; each listened when the other talked. But, as the volume of speech lessened, the interest thickened. It finally became concentrated, this interest, into true French fervor when the question of the trial was touched on. " They say D'Alengon is very clever. He pleads for Filon, the culprit, to-night, does he not ? " " Yes, poor Filon — it Avill go hard with him. His crime is a black one." "I should think it was— implicating le petit ! " "Dame! the judge doesn't seem to be of your mind." " Ah — h ! " cried a florid Vandyke-bearded man, the dynamite bomb of the table, exploding with a roar of rage. "Ah — 7^, ere nom de Dieu ! — 3Ies- sieurs les 2yresidents are all like that; they are always on the side of the innocent " " Till they prove them guilty." " Guilty ! guilty ! " the bomb exploded in earn- est now. " How many times in the annals of crime is a man guilty — really guilty? They should search for the cause— and punish that 284 THREE NORMANDY INNS. That is true justice. The instig-ator, the insti- gator — he is the true culprit. Inheritances — voila les vrais conpables. But when are such thing's in- vestigated ? It is ever the innocent who are pun- ished. I know something- of that — I do." " Allons — aJIons / " cried the table, laughing- at the beard's vehemence. " When were you ever under sentence 1 " " When T was doing my duty," the beard hurled back with both arms in the air; " when I was doing my three years — I and my comrade : "\ve were con- victed — punished — for an act of insubordination we never committed. Without a trial, without a chance of defending ourselves, we were put on two crumbs of bread and a glass of water for two months. And we were innocent — as innocent as babes, I tell you." The table was as still as death. The beard had proved himself worthy of this compliment ; his voice was the voice of di'ama, and his gestures such as every Frenchman delights in beholding and executing. Every ear was his, now. " I have no rancor. I am, by nature, what God made me, a peaceable man, but " — here the voice made a wild crescendo — " if I ever meet my colonel — gcij-e a lui ! I told him so. I waited two years, two long years, till I was released ; then I walked up to him " (the beard rose here, putting his hand to his forehead), " I saluted " (the hand made the salute), " and I said to him, * Mon colonel, you convicted me, on false evidence, of a crime I never committed. You punished me. It is two years since then. But I have never forgotten. Pray to THREE NORMANDY INNS. 285 God we may never meet in civil life, for then yours would end ! " " Allons, aUons ! A man after all must do his duty. A colonel — he can't g-o into details ! " re- monstrated the hostess, with her knife in the air. " I would stick him, I tell you, as I would a pig- — or a Prussian ! I live but for that ! " " Monstre ! " cried the table in chorus, with a laug-li, as it took its wine. And each turned to his neighbor to prove the beard in the wrong. " Of what crime is the defendant guilty — he who is to be tried to-night % " Charm asked of a silent man, with sweet serious eyes and a rough gray beard, seated next her. Of all the beards at the table, this one alone had been content with lis> tening. " Of fraud — mademoiselle — of fraud and for. gery." The man had a voice as sweet as a church bell, and as deep. Every word he said rang out slowly, sonorously. The attention of the table was fixed in an instant. " It is the case of a Monsieur Filon, of Cherbourg. He is a cider merchant. He has cheated the state, making false entries, etc. But his worst crime is that he has used as his ac- complice un tout petit Jeune homme — a lad of barely fifteen " " It is that that will make it go hard for him with the jury " "Hard!" cried the ex-soldier, getting red at once with the passion of his protest — " hard — it ought to condemn him, to guillotine him. What are juries for if they don't kill such rascals as he?" 286 THREE NORMANDY INNS. " Doucement, doucemeiit, monsieur" interrupted tlie bell-note of the merchant. " One doesn't condemn people without hearing- both sides. There may be extenuating- circumstances ! " " Yes — there are. He is a merchant. All mer- chants are thieves. He does as all others do — only he was found out." A protesting murmur now rose from the table, above which rang once more, in clear vibrations, the deep notes of the merchant. "Ah — h, mais — tons voleurs- -non, not all are thieves. Commerce conducted on such principles as that could not exist. Credit is not founded on fraud, but on trust." " Tres bien, ires bien," assented the table. Some knives were thumped to emphasize the assent. " As for stealing " — the rich voice continued, with calm judicial slowness — " I can understand a man's cheating the state once, x>erhaps — yield- ing to an impulse of cupidity. But to do as ce Monsieur Filon has done — he must be a consum- mate master of his art — for his processes are or- ganized robbery." " Ah — h, but robbery against the state isn't the same thing as robbing an individual," cried the explosive, driven into a corner. "It is quite the same — morally, only worse. For a man who robs the state robs everyone — in- cluding himself." "That's true — perfectly true — and very well put." All the heads about the table nodded ad- miringly ; their hostess had expressed the views of them all. The company was looking now at the THREE NORMANDY INNS. 287 gray beard with glistening- e3^es ; lie liad proved himself master of the arg-ument, and all were de- sirous of proving- their homag-e. Not one of the nice ethical points touched on had been missed ; even the women had been eagerly listening, fol- lowing, criticising. Here was a little company of people gathered together from rustic France, meeting, i^erhaps, for the first time at this board. And the conversation had, from the very beginning, been such as one commonly expects to hear only among the upper ranks of metropolitan circles. "Who Avould have looked to see a companj^ of Nor- man provincials talking morality, and handling ethics with the skill of rhetoricians ? Most of our fellow-diners, meauAvhile, were tak- ing their coffee in the street. Little tables were ranged close to the house- wall. There was just room for a bench beside the table, and then the sidewalk ended. " Shall you be going to the trial to-night ? " courteously asked the merchant who had proven himself a master in debate, of Charm. He had lifted his hat before he sat down, bowing to lier as if he had been in a ball-room. " It v/ill be fine to-night — it is the opening of the defence," he added, as he placed carefully two lumps of sugar in his cup. " It's always finer at night — what with the lights and the people, " interpolated the landlady, from her perch on the door-sill. " If ces dames wish to go, I can show them the way to the galleries. Only," she added, with a warning tone, her gi-ow- ing excitement obvious at the sense of the com- 288 THREE NORMANDY INNS. ' ing pleasure, "it is like the theatre. The earlier we get there the better the seat. I go to get my hat." And the door swallowed her up. " She is right — it is like a theatre," soliloquized the merchant — " and so is life. Poor Filon ! " AVe should have been very content to remain where we were. The night had fallen ; the streets, as they lost themselves in dim turnings, in mysterious alleyways, and arches that seemed grotesquely high in the vague blur of things, were filled for us with the charm of a new and lovely beauty. At one end the street ended in a towering mass of stone ; that doubtless was the cathedral. At the right, the narrow houses dipped suddenly ; their roof-lines were lost in vagueness. Between the slit made by the street a deep, vast chasm opened ; it was the night fill- ing the great width of sky, and the mists that shrouded the hill, rising out of the sleeping earth. There was only one single line of light; a long deep glow was banding the horizon ; it was a bit of fiame the dusk held up, like a fading torch, to show where the sun had reigned. In and out of this dusk the townspeople came and went. Away from the mellow lights, stream- ing past the open inn doors, the shapes were only a part of the blur ; they were vague, phan- tasmal masses, clad in coarse draperies. As they passed into the circle of light, the faces showed features we had grown to know — the high cheek- bones, the ruddy tones, the deep-set, serious eyes, and firm mouths, with lips close to- gether. The air on this hill-top must be of ex- THREE NORMANDT INNS. 289 cellent quality; the life up here could scarcely be so hard as in the field villages. For the women looked less worn, and less hideously old, and in the men's eyes there was not so hard and miserly a glittering-. Almost all, young or old, were bearing strange burdens. Some of the men were carrying huge floral crosses ; the women were laden with every conceivable variety of object — with candlesticks, vases, urns, linen sheets, rugs, with chairs even. " They are helping to dress the reposoirs, they must all be in readiness for the morning," an- swered our friend, still beside us, when we asked the cause of this astonishing spectacle. Everywhere garlands and firs, leaves, flowers, and wreaths ; people moving rapidly ; the carriers of the crosses stopping to chat for an instant with groups working at some mysterious scafi'olding — all shapes in darkness. Everywhere, also, there was the sweet, aromatic scent of the greens and the pines abroad in the still, clear air of the sum- mer night. This was the perfume and these the dim pict- ures that were our company along the narrow Coutances streets. CHAPTEK XXVI. A SCENE IN A NORMAN COURT. The court-room was brightly lighted ; the yellow radi- ance on the white walls made the eyes blink. We had turned, following our guide, from the gloom of the dim streets into the roomy corridors of the Prefecture. Even the gar- dens about the building were swarming with townspeople and peasants waiting for the court to oj)en. When we entered it was to find the hallways and stairs blocked with a struggling mass of people, all eager to get seats. A voice that was softened to a purring note, the voice that goes with the pursuit of the five-franc piece, spoke to our landlady. "The seats to be reserved in the tribune were for these ladies ? " No time had been lost, you perceive. We were strangers ; the courtesies of the town were to be extended to us. We were to have of their best, here in Coutances ; and their best, just now, was this mise-en-scene in their court-room. The stage was well set. The Frenchman's in- stinctive sense of fitness was obvious in the ar- THREE NORMANDY INNS. 291 rangements. Long* lines of blue di-apery from the tall windows brought the groups below into high relief ; the scarlet of the judges' robes was doubly impressive against this background. The lawyers, in their flowing black gowns and white ties, gained added dignity from the marine note behind them. The bluish pallor of the Avails made the accused and the group about him pathetically sombre. Each one of this little group was in black. The accused himself, a sharp, shrewd, too keen-eyed man of thirty or so, might have been following a corpse — so black was his raiment. Even the youth beside him, a dull, sodden-eyed lad, with an air of being here not on his own account, but because he had been forced to come, was clad in deepest mourning. By the side of the culjDrit sat the one really tragic figure in all the court — the culprit's wife. She also was in black. In happier times she must have been a fair, fresh-colored blonde. Now all the color was gone from her cheek. She was as pale as death, and in her sweet downcast eyes there were the tell-tale vigils of long nights of weeping. Beside her sat an elderly man who bent over her, talking, whispering, commenting as the trial went on. Every eye in the tribune was fixed on the slim young figure. A jDassing glance sufficed, as a rule, for the culprit and his accomplice ; but it was on the wife that all the quick French sympathy, that volubly spoke itself out, was lavished. The blouses and peasants' caps, the tradesmen and their wives crowded close about the railing to pass their comment. 292 THREE NORMANDY INNS. " She looks far more guilty tlian he," muttered a wizened old man next to us, very crooked on his three-legged stool. "Yes," warmly added a stout capped peasant, with a basket once on her arm, noAv serving" as a pedestal to raise the higher above the others her own curiosity. " Yes — she has her modesty — too — to speak for her " " Bah — all put on — ^^to soften the jury." It was our fiery one of the table d'hote who had wedged his way toward us. " And why not ? A woman must make use of what weapons she has at hand — • — " " Silence ! Silence ! messieurs ! " The huissier brought down his staff of office with a ring. The clatter of sabots over the wooden floor of the tri- bune and the loud talking were disturbing the court. This French court, as a court, sat in strange fashion, it seemed to us. The bench was on wonderfully friendly terms with the table about which the clerks sat, with the lawyers, with the foreman of the jury, with even the huissier s. Mon- sieur le President was in his robes, but he wore them as negligently as he did the dignity of his office. He and the lawyer for the defence, a noted Coutances orator, openly wrangled; the latter, in- deed, took little or no pains to show him respect ; now they joked together, next a retort flashed forth which began a quarrel, and the court and the trial looked on as both struggled for a mastery in the art of personal abuse. The lawyer made nothing of raising his finger, to shake it in open THREE NORMANDY INNS. 293 menace in the very teeth of the scarlet robes. And the robes chid a purple-faced fig-nre that retorted ang-rily, like a tighting- school-boy. But to Coutances, this, it appears, was a proper way for a court to sit. " Ah, D'Alengon — il estforf, lui. C'est lid qui agace toiijours monsieur le president " "He'll win — he'll make a great speech — he is never really fine unless it's a question of life or death " Such were the criticisms that were poured out from the quick-speaking- lips about us. Presently a simultaneous movement on the part of the jury broug-ht the proceedings to confusion. A witness in the act of giving- evidence stopped short in his sentence ; he twisted his head ; look- ing- upward, he asked a question of the foreman, and the latter nodded, as if assenting-. The judg-e then looked up. All the court looked up. All the heads were twisted. Something- obviously was wrong-. Then, presently the concierge ap- peared with a hug-e bunch of keys. And all the court waited in perfect stillness — while the windows were being closed ! " II y avail iin courant d'air — there was a draught," — gravely announced the crooked man, as he rose to let the concierge pass. This latter had her views of a court so susceptible to whiffs of night air. " Ces messieurs are delicate — pity they have to be out at night ! " — whereat the tribune snickered. All went on bravely for a good half -hour. More witnesses were called ; each answered with won- derful aptness, ease, and clearness ; none were 294 THREE NORMANDY INNS. confused or timid; tliese were not men to be the plaything's of others who made tortuous cross-questionings their trade. They, also, were Frenchmen ; they knew how to speak. The judge and the Coutances lawyer continued their jokes and their squabblings. And still only the poor wife hung" her head Then all at once the judge began to mop his brow. The jury, to a man, mopped theirs. The witnesses and lawyers each brought forth their big silk handkerchiefs. All the court was wiping" its brow. " It's the heat," cried the judge. " Huissier, call the concie7'ge; tell her to open the windows." The concierge reappeared. Flushed this time, and with anger in her eye. She pushed her way through the crowd ; she took not the least pains in the world to conceal her opinion of a court as variable as this one. " Ah mais, this is too much ! if the jury doesn't know its mind better than this ! "—and in the fury of her wrath she well-nigh upset the crooked little old gentleman and his three-legged stool. " That's right — that's right. I'm not a fine lady, tip me over. You open and shut me as if I were a bureau drawer ; continuez — continuez " The concierge had reached the windows now. She was opening- and slamming them in the face of the judge, the jury, and messieurs les huissiers, with unabashed violence. The court, except for that one figure in sombre draperies, being men, suffered this violence as only men bear with a woman in a temper. With the letting in of the THREE NORMANDY INNS. 295 fresh air, fresli energ-y in the x^rosecution mani- fested itself. The witnesses were being sub- jected to inquisitorial torture ; their answers were still g"lib, but the faces were studies of the passions held in the leash of self-control. Not twenty minutes had ticked their beat of time when once more the jurj', to a man, showed signs of shivering. Half a dozen gravely took out their pocket-handkerchiefs, and as g-ravely covered their heads. Others knotted the square of linen, thus making' a closer head-gear. The judg^e turned un- easily in his own chair ; he gave a furtive g-lance at the still open windows; as he did so he caught sig"ht of his jury thus patiently suffering. The spectacle went to his heart ; these g-entlemen were again in a draug-ht ? '\\'here was the concierge ? Then the hidssier whispered in the judge's ear; no one heard, but everyone divined the whisper. It was to remind monsieur le president that the concierge was in a temper ; would it not be bet- ter for him, the huissier, to close the windows? Without a smile the judge bent his head, assent- ing". And once more all proceedings were at a standstill ; the court was patiently waiting, once more, for the windows to be closed. Now, in all this, no one, not even the wizened old man who was obviousU' the humorist of the tribune, had seen anything farcical. To be too hot — to be too cold ! this is a serious matter in France. A jury surely has a right to protect itself against cold, against la migraine, and the devils of rheumatism and pleurisy. There is nothing- ridic- ulous in twelve men sitting in judgment on a fel- 296 THREE NORMANDY INNS. low-man, with their handkerchiefs covering: their bare heads. Nor of a judge who gallantly remem- ' bers the temper of a concierge. Nor of a whole court sitting- in silence, while the windows are opened and closed. There was nothing- in all this to tickle the play of French humor. But then, we remembered, France is not the land of humorists, but of wits. Monsieur d'Alen^on down yonder, as he rises from his chair to address the judge and jury, will prove to you and me, in the next two hours, how great an orator a Frenchman can be, without trenching an inch on the humorist's ground. The court-room was so still now that you could have heard the fall of a j^in. At last the great moment had come — the mo- ment and the man. There is nothing in life Frenchmen love better than a good speech — im discours ; and to have the same pitched in the dramatic key, with a tragic result hanging on the etiects of the pleading, this is the very climax of enjoyment. To a Norman, oratory is not second, but first, nature ; all the men of this i^rovince have inherited the gift of a facile eloquence. But this Monsieur d'Alengon, the crooked man whispered, in hurried explanation, he was uii fameux — even the Paris courts had to send for him when they wanted a great orator. The famous lawyer understood the alphabet of his calling. He knew the value of effect. He threw himself at once into the orators x^ose. His gown took sculptural lines ; his arms were waved majestically, as arms that were conscious of hav- THREE NORMANDY INNS. 297 ing- great sleeves to accentuate the lines of gest- ure. Then he began to speak. The voice was soft ; at first one was chiefly conscious of the music in its cadences. But as it warmed and grew with the ardor of the words, the room was filled with such vibrations as usually come only with the sounding- of rich wind-instruments. With such a voice a man could do anything*. D'Alen^on played with it as a man plays with a power he has both trained and conquered. It was firmly modulated, with no accent of sympathy when he opened his plea for his client. It warmed slightly when he indig- nantly repelled the charges brought against the latter. It took the cadence of a lover when he pointed to the young- wife's figure and asked if it were likely a husband could be guilty of such crimes, year after year, with such a woman as that beside him ? It was tenderly explanatory as he went on enlarging on the young wife's perfections, on her character, so well known to them all here in Coutances, on the influence she had given the home-life jonder in Cherbourg-. Even the chil- dren were not forgotten, as an aid to incidental testimony. Was it even conceivable a father of a young family would lead an innocent lad into error, fraud, and theft ? " It is he who knows how to touch the heart ! " " Quel beau moment ! " cried the wizened man, in a transport. " See — the jury weep ! " All the court was in tears, even monsieur le president sniffled, and yet there was no draught. 298 THREE NORMANDY INNS. As for the peasant women and the shop-keepers, they could not have been more moved if the cuL prit had been a blood-relation. How they en- joyed their tears ! What a delight it was to thus thrill and shiver ! The wife was sobbing- now, with her head on her uncle's shoulder. And the culprit was acting his part, also, to perfection. He had been firmly stoical until now. But at this parade of his wife's virtues he broke down, his head was bowed at last. It was all the tribune could do to keep its applause from breaking forth. It was such a perfect performance ! it was as good as the theatre — far better — for this was real — this play — with a man's whole future at stake ! Until midnight the lawyer held all in the town in a trance. He ended at last with a Ciceronian, declamatory outburst. A great buzz of applause welled up from the court. The tribune was in transports ; such a magnificent harangue he had not given them in years. It was one of his great- est victories. " And his victories, madame, they are the vic- tories of all Coutances." The crooked man almost stood upright in the excitement of his enthusiasm. Great drops of sweat were on his wrinkled old brow. The even- ing had been a great event in his life, as liis twisted frame, all a-tremble with pleasurable ela- tion, exultingly proved. The women's caps were closer together than ever ; they were pressing in a solid mass close to the railing of the tribune to gain one last look at the figure of the wife. " It is she who will not sleep " THREE NORMANDY INNS. 299 " Poor soul, are her cliiltlreu with her ? " " No — and no women either. There is only the uncle." " He is a good man, he will comfort her ! " " Faut prier le bon Dieu ! " At the court -room door there was a last giimpse of the stricken fig-ure. She disappeared into the blackness of the night, bent and feeble, leaning with pitiful attempt at dignity on the uncle's arm. With the dawn she would learn her husband's fate. The jury would be out all night. " You see, madame, it is she who must really suffer in the end." We were also walking into the night, through the bushes of the garden, to the dark of the streets. Our landlady was guid- ing us, and talking volubly. She was still under the influence of the past hour's excitement. Her voice trembled audibly, and she was walking with brisk strides through the dim streets. " If Filon is condemned, what would happen to them ? " " Oh, he would pass a few years in prison — not many. The jury is always easy on the rich. But his future is ruined. They — the family— would have to go away. But even then, rumor would follow them. It travels far nowadays— it has a thousand legs, as they say here. ^\Tierever they go they will be known. But Monsieur d'Alen^on, what did you think of him, hein ? There's a great man — what an orator! One must go as far as Paris — to the theatre ; one must hear a great play — and even there, wdien does an actor make you weep as he did ? Henri, he was superb. I tell 300 IHREE NORMANDY INNS. you, superb ! d'une eloquence ! " And to her hus- band, when we reached the inn dooi", our viva- cious landlady was still narrating- the chief points of the speech as we crawled wearily up to our beds. It was early the next morning" when we descend- ed into the inn dining-room. The lawyer's elo- quence had interfered with our rest. Coffee and a bite of fresh air were best taken together, we agreed. Before the coffee came the news of the culprit's fate. Most of the inn establishment had been sent to court to learn the jury's verdict. Madame confessed to a sleepless night. The thought of that poor wife had haunted her pillow. She had deemed it best — but just to us all, in a word, to despatch Aug-uste — the one inn waiter, to hear the verdict. Tiens, there he was now, turn- ing- the street corner. " II est acquitte / " rang- through the streets. " He is acquitted — he is acquitted ! Le bon Dieu soil loue ! Henri — Ernest— Monsieur Terier, he is acquitted — he is acquitted ! I tell you ! " The cry rang- through the house. Our landlady was shouting the news out of doors, through Avin- dows, to the passers-by, to the very dogs as they ran. But the townspeople needed no summon- ing. The windows were crowded full of eager heads, all asking the same question at once. A company of peasants coming up from the fields for breakfast stopped to hear the glad tidings. The shop-keepers all the length of the street gathered to join them. Everyone was talking at once. Every shade of opinion was aired in the THREE NORMANDY INN8. 301 morning' sun. On one subject alone tliere was a universal agreement. " What g'oocl news for the poor wife ! " "And what a night she must have passed ! " All this sympathy and interest, be it remem- bered, was for one they barely knew. To be the niece of a Coutances uncle — this was enough, it appears, for the good people of this cathedral city, to insure the How of their tears and the gift of their prayers. CHAPTEE XXVn. THE FETE-DIEU — A JUNE CHEISTMAS. When we stepped forth into the streets, it was to find a flower - strewn city. The paving-stones were covered with the needles of pines, with fir-boug-hs, with rose- leaves, lily stocks, and with the petals of flock and cle- matis. One's feet sank into the odorous carpet as in the thick wool of an Oriental prayer-rug. To tread ui^on this verdure was to crush out j^erfume. Yet the fragrance had a solemn flavor. There was a touch of consecration in the very aroma of the fir-sap. Never was there a town so given over to its festival. Everything else — all trade, commerce, occupation, work, or pleasure even, was at a dead standstill. In all the city there was bat one thought, one object, one end in view. This was the great day of the Ftte-Dieu. To this blessed feast of the Sacrament the townspeople had been looking forward for weeks. It is their June Christmas. The great day brings families together. THREE NORMANDY INNS. 303 From all the country round the farm wagons had been climbing the hill for hours. The peasants were in holiday dress. Gold crosses and amber beads encircled leathery old necks ; the gossamer caps, real Normandj^ caps at last, crowned heads held erect to-day, with the pride of those who had come to town clad in their best. Even the younger women were in true peasant garb ; there was a touch of a ribbon, brilliant red and blue stockings, and the sparkle of silver shoe-buckles and gold necklaces to prove they had donned their finery in honor of the ftte. The men wore their blue and purple blouses over their holiday suits; but almost all had pinned a sprig of bright geranium or honeysuckle to brighten up the shiny cotton of the preservative blouse. Even the children car- ried bouquets ; and thus many of the farm wagons were as gay as the streets. No, gay is not the word. Neither the city nor the streets were really gay. The city, as a city, was too dead in earnest, too absorbed, too intent, to indulge in gayety. It was the greatest of all the days of the year in Coutances. In the cli- maxic moments of life, one is solemn, not gay. It was not only the greatest, but the busiest, day of the year for this cathedral town. Here was a whole city to deck ; every street, every alleyway must be as beautiful as a church on a feast-daj'". The city, in truth, must be changed from a bust- ling, trading, commercial entrepot into an altar. And this altar must be beautiful — as beautiful, as ingeniously picturesque as only the French instinct for beauty could make it. 304 THREE NORMANDY INNS. Think you, with, sucli a task on hand, this city- ful of artists had time for frivolous idling- ? Since dawn these artists had been scrubbing their doors, washing- windows, and sluicing the g-utters. One is not a provincial for nothing ; one is hon- est in the provinces ; one does not drape finery over a filthy frame. The city was washed first, before it was adorned. Opposite, across from our inn door-sill, where we lingered a moment before we began our jour- ney through the streets, we could see for our- selves how thorough was this cleansing. A shojD- keei3er and his wife were each mounted on a step-ladder. One washed the inside and the other the outside of the low shop-windows. They were in the greatest possible haste, for they were late in their prejDarations. In two hours the proces- sion was to pass. Their neighbors stopped to cry up to them : " Tendez-vous, aujourd'hui ? " It is the imiversal question, heard everywhere. " Mais Old," croaked out the man, his voice sounding like the croak of a rook, from the height from which he spoke. " Only we are late, you see." It was his wife who was taking the question to heart. She saw in it just cause for affront. " Ah, those Espergnons, they're always on time, they are; they had their hangings out a week ago, and now they are as filthy as wash -rags. No wonder they have time to walk the streets ! " and the indignant dame gave her window-pane an extra polish. THREE NORMANDY INNS. 305 " Here, Leon, catch hold, I'm read}^ now ! " The woman was holding out one end of a long, snowy sheet. Leon meekly took his end; both hooked the stuff to some rings ready to secure the hanging ; the fagade of the little house was soon hidden behind the white fall of the family linen ; and presently Leon and his wife began very gravely to pin tiny sprigs of purple clematis across the white surface. This latter decoration was per- formed with the sure touch of artists. No mediae- val designer of tapestry could have chosen, with more secure selection, the precise points of dis- tance at which to place the bouquets ; nor could the tones and tints of the greens and purples, and the velvet of the occasional heartsease, sparsely used, have been more correctly combined. When the task was ended, the commonplace house was a palace wall, hung with the sheen of fine linen, on which bloomed geometric figures beautifully spaced. All the city was thus draped. One walked through long walls of snow, in which flowers grew. Sometimes the floral decorations expand- ed from the more common sprig into wreaths and garlands. Here and there the Coutances fancy worked itself out in fleiu--de-Us emblems or in ar- morial bearings. But everywhere an astonishing, instinctive sense of beauty, a knowledge of pro- portion, and a natural sense for color were ob- vious. There was not, in all the toA^oi, a single of- fence committed against taste. Is it any wonder, with such an heredity at their fingers' ends, that the provinces feed Paris, and that Paris sets the fashions in beauty for the rest of the world ? 306 THREE NORMANDY INNS. Come with us, and look upon this open-air chapel. It stands in the open street, in front of an old house of imposing asr)ect. The two com- monplace-looking- women who are putting the finishing touches to this beautiful creation tell us it is the reposoir of Madame la Baronne. They have been working on it since the day before. In the night the miracle was finished — nearly— they were so weary they had gone to bed at dawn. They do not tell you it is a miracle. They think it fine, oh, yes — " c'esf beau — Madame la Baronne always has the most beautiful of all the reposoirs," but then they have decked these altars since they were born ; their grandmothers built them before ever they saw the light. For always in Coutances "on la fete beaucoup ; " this feast of the Sacrament has been a great day in Coutances for centuries past. But although they are so used to it, these natural architects love the day. " It's so fine to see — si beau a voir — all the reposoirs, and the children and the fine ladies walking through the streets, and then, all kneeling when Monseigneur I'Archeveque prays. Ah yes, it is a fine sight." They nod, and smile, and then they turn to light a taper, and to consult about the placing of a certain vase from out of which an Easter lily towers. At the foot of these miniature altars trees had been planted. Gardens had also been laid out ; the parterres were as gravely watered as if they were to remain in the middle of a bustling high street in perpetuity. Steps lead up to the altar. These were covered with rugs and carpets ; for the feet of the bishop must tread only on velvet and THREE NOHMANDY INNS. 307 flowers. Candelabra, vases, banners, crosses, cru- cifixes, flowers, and tall thin tapers— all the altars were crowded with such adornments. Human vanity and the love of surpassing one's neighbors, these also figured conspicuously among the things the fitfully shining sun looks down upon. But what a charm there is in such a contest ! Surely the desire to beautify the spot on which the Blessed Sacrament rests— this is only another way of professing one's adoration. As we passed through the streets a multitude of pictures crowded upon the eyes. In an archway groups of young first communicants were forming; they were on their way to the cathedral. Their white veils against the gloom of the recessed archways were like sunlit clouds caught in an abyss. Priests in gorgeous vestments were walk- ing quickly through the streets. All the peasants were going also toward the cathedral. A group stopped, as did we, to turn into a side-street. For there was a picture we should not see later on. Between some lovely old turrets, down from con- vent walls a group of nuns fluttered tremulously; they were putting the last touches to the reposoir of their own Sacre Coeur. Some were carrying huge gilt crosses, staggering as they walked; others were on tiptoe filling the tall vases; others were on their knees, patting into perfect smoothness the turf laid about the altar steps. There was an old cure among them and a young carpenter whom the cure was directing. Every- one of the nuns had her black skirts tucked up ; their stout shoes must be free to fly over the SOS THREE KORMANDT INNS. ground with the swiftness of hounds. How pretty the faces were, under the great caps, in that moment of unwonted excitement ! The cheeks, even of the older nuns, were pink ; it was a pink that made their habitual pallor have a dazzling beauty. The eyes were lighted into a fresh flame of life, and the lips were temptingly crimson ; they were only women, after all, these nuns, and once a year at least this feast of the Sacrament brings all their feminine activities into play. Still we moved on, for within the cathedral the procession had not yet formed. There was still time to make a tour of the town. To plunge into the side-streets away from the wide cathedral i3arvis,was to be confronted with a strange calm. These narrow thoroughfares had the stillness which broods over all ancient cities' by-ways. Here was no festival bustle ; all was grave and sad. The only dwellers left in the an- tique fifteenth century houses were those who must remain at home till a still smaller house holds them. We passed several aged Coutan^ais couples. By twos they were seated at the low windows ; the}' had been dressed and then left ; they were sitting here, in the pathetic patience of old age; they were hoping something of the/ei!e might come their way. Two women, in one of the low interiors, were more philosophic than their neighbors ; if their stiffened knees would not carry them to the fete, at least their gnarled old hands could hold a pack of cards. They were seated close to the open casement, facing each other across a small round table ; along the win- dow-sill there were rows of flower-pots ; a iDewter A STKEET IN UOLTANCES — K(iI,ISK SAINT I'lICUKE. THREE NORMANDY INNS. 809 tankard was set between them : and out of the shadowy interior came the topaz gleam of the Normandy brasses, the huge bed, with its snowy draperies, the great chests, and the flowery chintz- frill defining the width of the yawning fireplace. The two old faces, with the strong features, deep wrinkles, sunken mouths, and bald heads tied up in dazzling white coifs, were in full relief against the dim background. They were as motionless as statues ; neither looked up as our footfall struck along the cobbles ; it was an exciting moment in the game. BeloAV these old houses stretched the public gardens. Here also there was a great stillness. For us alone the rose gardens bloomed, the tropi- cal trees were shivering, and the palms were making a night of shade for wide acres of turf. Earely does a city boast of such a garden. It was no surprise to learn, later, that these lovely paths and noble terraces had been the slow achievement of a lover of landscape gardening, one who, dy- ing, had given this, his master-piece, to his native town. There is no better place from which to view the beautiful city. From the horizontal lines of the broad terraces flows the great sweep of the hill- side ; it takes a swift precipitous plunge, and rests below in wide stretches of meadow. The garden itself seemed, by virtue of this encompassing cir- cle of green, to be only a more exquisitely culti- vated portion of the lovely outlying hills and wooded depths. The cows, grazing below in the valleys, were whisking their tails, and from the farm-vards came the crow of the chanticleer. 310 THREE NORMANDY INNS. One turned to look upward — to follow heaven- ward the soaring- glory of the cathedral towers. From the plane of the streets their geometric per- fection had made their lines seem cold. Through this aerial perspective the eye followed, enrapt- ured, the perfect Gothic of the spires and the lower central tower. The great nave roof and the choir lifted themselves above the turrets and the tiled house-tops of the city, as gray mountains of stone rise above the huts of pyg- mies. Coutances does well to be proud of its ca- thedral. The sound of a footstep, crunching the gravel of the garden- walk, caused us to turn. It was to find, face to face, the hero of the night before ; the celebrated Coutances lawyer was also taking his constitutional. But not alone, some friends were with him, come up to town doubtless for the ftie or the trial. He was showing them his city. He stretched a hand forth, with the same magisterial gesture of the night before, to point out the glory of the prospect lying below the terrace. He faced the cathedral towers, explaining the points of their perfection. And then, for he was a French- man, he perceived the presence of two ladies. In an instant his hat was raised, and as quickly his eyes told us he had seen us before, in the court- room. The bow was the lower because of this re- cognition, and the salute was accompanied by a grave smile. Manners in the provinces are still good, you perceive — if only you are far enough away from Paris. THREE NORMANDY INNS 311 Someone else also bestowed on us the courtesy of a passing greetin.g. It was a cure who was saying his Ave, as he paced slowly, in the sun, up and down the yew path. He was old; one leg- was already tired of life — it must be drag-g-ed pain- fully along-, when one walked in the sun. The cure himself was not in the least tired of life. His smile was as warm as the sun as he lifted his calotte. " Surely, mesdames, you will not miss the fCte ? It must be forming now." He had taken an old man's, and a priest's, privi- lege. We were all three looking- down into the valley, which lay below, a pool of freshness. He had spoken, first of the beauty of the prospect, and then of the great day. To be young and still strong, to be able to follow the procession from street to street, and yet to be lingering here among the roses!— this passed the simple cure's comprehension. The reproach in his mild old eyes was quickly changed to approval, however ; for upon the announcement that the procession was already in motion we started, bidding him a hurried adieu. The huge cathedral portals 3^awned at the top of the hill ; they were like a gaping chasm. The great place of the cathedral square was half filled ; a part of the procession had passed already beyond the gloom of the vast aisles into the irank openness of day. Winding in and out cf the white-hung streets a long line of figures was marching ; part of the line had reached the first reposoir, and gi'adually the swaying of the heads 312 THREE NORMANDT INNS. was slackening-, as, by twos and twos, the figures stopped. Still, from between tlie cathedral doors an un- ending- multitude of people kept pouring- forth upon the cathedral square. Now it was an inter- minable line of young- g-irls, first communicants, in their white veils and gowns ; against the grays and browns of the cathedral fa9ade this mass of snow was of startling- purity — & great white rose of light. Closely following- the dazzling- line marched a grave company of nuns ; with their black robes sweeping the flower-strewn streets, the pallor of their faces, and the white wings of their huge coifs, they might have been so many marble statues moving with slow, automatic step, repeating in life the statues in stone above their heads, incarnations of meek renunciation. With the free and joyous step of a vigorous youth not yet tamed to complete self-obliteration, next there stepped forth into the sun a group of seminarists. In the lace and scarlet of their bright robes they were like unto so many young kings. High in the summer air they swung their golden censers ; from huge baskets, heaped with flowers, they scattered flowers as they swayed, in the grace of their youth, from side to side, with priestly rhythmic motion. In the days of Greece, under the Attic tent of sky, it was Jove that was thus worshipped ; here in Coutances, under the paler, less ardent blue of France, it was the Christian God these youths were honoring. So men have continued to scat- ter flowers ; to swing incense ; to bend the knee ; surely in all ages the long homage of men, like the THREE NORMANDY INNS. 313 procession here before us, has been but this — the longing to worship the Invisible, and to make the act one with beauty. Is it Greek, is it Christian, this festival ? If it be Catholic, it is also pagan. It is as composite a union of religious ceremonials as man is himself an aggregate of lost types, for there is a subtle law of repetition which g'overns both men and ceremonials. How pagan was the color ! how Greek the sense of beauty that lies in contrasts ! how Jewish the splendor of the priestly vestments as the gold and silver tissues gleamed in the sun ! How mediaeval this survival of an old miracle play ! See this group of children, half-frightened, half-proud, wandering from side to side as chil- dren unused to walking soberly ever march. They were following the leadership of a huge Suisse. This latter was magnificently apparelled. He carried a great mace, and this he swung high in the air. The children, little John the Baptist, Christ, Mary the Mother, and Magdalen, were magnetized by his mighty skill. They were looking at the golden stick ; they were thinking only of how high he, this splendid giant who ter- rified them so, would throw it the next time, and if he would always surely catch it. The small Virgin, in her long brown robes, tripped as she walked. The cherubic John the Baptist, with only his sheepskin and his cross, shivered as he stumbled after her. " At least they might have covered his arms, le pauvre petit" one stout peasant among the bystand- 314 THREE NORMANDY INNS. ers was Christian enoug-li to mutter, " Poor little John ! " Even in summer the sun is none too hot on this hill-top ; and a sheepskin is a garment one must be used to, it appears. Christ, himself, was no better off. He was wearing his crown of thorns, but he had only his night-dress, bound with a girdle, to keep his naked little body warm. An angel, in gossamer wings and a huge rose-wreath, being of the other sex, had her innate woman's love of finery to make her oblivious to the light sting of the wind, as it passed through her draper- ies. As this group in the procession moved slowly along, the city took on a curiously antique aspect. In every lattice window a head was framed. The lines of the townspeople pressed closer and closer; they made a serried mass of blouses and caps, of shiny coats and bared heads. The very houses seemed to recognize that a part of their own youth was passing them by ; these were the figures they had looked out uiDon, time after time, in the old fourteenth and fifteenth cen- tury days, when the great miracle plays drew the country around, for miles and miles, to this Cou- tances square. Across the square, in the long gray distance of the streets, the archbishop's canopy was motion- less. A sweet groaning murmur rippled from lip to lip. Then a swift and might}^ rustling filled the air, for the bones of thousands of knees were striking the stones of the street ; — even heretic knees were bent when the Host was lifted. It was the moment of silent XDrayer. It was also, perhaps, the most THREE NORMANDY INNS. 315 beautiful, it was assuredly the most consum- mately picturesque moment of the day. The bent heads ; the long* vistas of kneeling- figures ; the lovely contrasts of the flowing draperies ; the trailing splendor of the priests' robes dj'ing into the black note made by the nuns' sombre skirts ; the gossamer brilliance of the hundreds of white veils, through which the young rapture of relig- ious awe on lips and brow made even common- place features beautiful ; the choristers' scarlet petticoats; the culminating note of splendor, the Archbishop, throned like some antique scriptural king under the feathers and velvets of his crimson canopy ; then the long lines of the townspeople with the groups of peasants beside them, whose well- sunned skins made even their complexion seem pale by the side of cheeks that brought the burn of noon-suns in the valleys to mind ; and behind this wall of kneeling figures, those other walls, the long white-himg house fagades, with their pendent sprigs and wreaths and garlands above which hung the frieze of human heads beneath the carved cornices ; surel}^ this was indeed the culminating moment, both in point of beauty and in impressiveness, of the great day's festival. Thus was repcsoir after reposoir visited. Again and ag-ain the multitude was on its knees. Again and again the Host was lifted. And still we followed. Sometimes all the line was in full light, a long perspective of color and of pris- matic radiance. And then the line would be lost ; some part of it was still in a side-street ; and the rest were singing along the edges of the 316 THREE NORMANDY INNS. city's ramparts, under the great brandies of the trees. Here, in the gray of the narrow streets, the choristers' gowns were startling in their rich- ness. Yonder, in full sunlight, the brightness on the maidens' robes made the shadows in their white skirts as blue as light caught in a grotto's depth. Still they sang. In the dim streets or under the trees, where the gay banners were still flut- tering, and the white veils, like airy sails, were bulging in the wind, the hymn went on. It was thin and pathetically weak in the mouths of the babes that walked. It was clear, as fresh and pure as a brooklet's ripple, from the mouths of the young communicants. It was of firm contralto strength from the throats of the grave nuns. The notes gained and gained in richness ; the hymn was almost a chant with the priests ; and in the mouths of the people it was as a ringing chorus. Together with the swelling music swung the in- cense into high air; and to the Host the rose- leaves were flung. Still we followed. Still the long line moved on from altar to altar. Then, when the noon was long past, wearily we climbed upward to our inn. In the high streets there was much going to and fro. The shop-keepers already were taking down their linen. Pouffe! Pouffe ! there was much blowing through mouths and a great stand- ing on tiptoes to reach the tall tapers on the reposoirs. Coutances was pious. Coutances was proud of THREE NORMANDY INNS. 317 its fete. But Coutances was also a thrifty city. Once the cortege liad passed, it was high time to snuff out the tapers. Who coukl stand by and see good candles blowing uselessly in the wind, and one's money going along with the dripping ? CHAPTEE XXYm. BY LAND TO MONT ST. MICHEL. Two hours later the usual collection of forces was as- sembled in our inn court- yard ; for a question of im- portance was to be decided. Madame was there — chief of the council ; her hus- band was also present, be- cause he misfht be useful in case any dispute as to madame's word came up ; Auguste, the one inn waiter, was an important figure of the group ; for he, of them all, was the really travelled one ; he had seen the world — he was to be counted on as to distances and routes ; and above, from the upper windows, the two ladies of the bed-chamber looked down, to act as chorus to the brisk dia- logue going on between madame and the owner of a certain victoria for which we were in treaty. " Ces dames," madame said, with a shrug which was meant for the coachman, and a smile which was her gift to us — " these ladies wish to go to Mont St. Michel, to drive there. Have you your little victoria and Poulette ? " Now, by the shrug madame had conveyed to the man and the assembled household generally, her THREE NORMANDY INNS. 319 own great scorn of us, and of our plans. "Wliat a whim this, of driving, forsooth, to the Mont ! Dieu saif — French people were not given to any such follies ; they were serious-minded, alioays, in matters of travel. To travel at all, was no light thing; one made one's will and took an honest and tearful farewell of one's family, when one went on a journey. But these English, these Americans, there's no foretelling to what point their folly will make them tempt fate ! However, madame was one who knew on which side her bread was buttered, if ever a woman did, and the continuance of these mad follies helped to butter her own French roll. And so her shrug and wink conveyed to the tall Norman just how much these particular lunatics before them would be willing to pay for this their whim. " Have 3^ou Poulette % " " Yes — yes — Poulette is at home. I have made her repose herself all day — hearing these ladies had spoken of driving to the Mont " Chorus from the upper window-sills. " The poor beast ! it isjoliment lonr/ue — la distance." " As these ladies observe," continued the owner of the doomed animal, not raising his head, but quickly acting on the hint, "it is long, the dis- tance — one does not go for nothing." And though the man kept his mouth from betraying him, his keen eyes glittered with avarice. " And then — ces dames must descend at Genets, to cross the greve, fu sais" interpolated the waiter, excitedly changing his napkin, his wand of office, from one armpit to the other. The thought of 320 THREE NORMANDY INNS. travel stirred his blood. It was fine — to start off thus, without having to make the necessary ar- rangements for a winter's service or a summer's season. And to drive, that would be new — yes that would be a change indeed from the stuffy third-class compartments. For Auguste, you see, approved of us and of the foolishness of our plans. His sympathy being gratis, was allied to the pro- tective instinct — he would see the cheating was at least as honestly done as was compatible with French methods. " Another carriage — and why ? " we meekly quer- ied, warned by this friendly hint. A chorus now arose from the entire audience. " Mais, madame ! — it is as much as five or six kilos over the sands to the Mont from Genets ! " was cried out in a tone of universal reproach. "Through rivers, madame, through rivers as high as that ! " and Auguste, striking in after the chorus, measured himself off at the breast. " Yes— the water comes to there, on the horse," added the driver, sweeping an imaginary horse's head, with a fine gesture, in the air. "Dame, that must be fine to see," cried down Leontine and Marie, gasping with little sighs of envy. " And so it is ! " cried back Auguste, nodding upward with dramatic gesture. " One can get as wet as a duck— splashing through those rivers. Dieu ! que c'est beau ! " And he clasped his hands as his eye, rolling heavenward, caught the blue and the velvet of the four feminine orbs on its up- ward way. Seeing which ecstasy, the courtyard THREE NORMANDY INNS. 3-21 visibly relented ; Auguste's rapture and his envy had worked the common human miracle of turning contempt for a folly into belief in it. This quick firing of French i^eople to a loleasur- able elation in others' adventure is, I think -we must all agree, one of the great charms of this ex- citable race : anything will serve as a pretext for setting this sympathetic vibration in motion. "What they all crave as a nation is a daily, hourly diet of the unusual, the unforeseen. It is this i^assion for incident which makes a Frenchman's life not unlike his soups, since in the case of both, how often does he make something out of nothing ! An hour later we were picking our way through the city's streets. Sweeter than the crushed flow- ers was the free air of the vallej^. There is no way of looking back so agreeable, on the whole, I think, as to look back upon a city. From the near distance of the first turn in the road, Coutances and its cathedral were at their very best. The hill on which both stood was only one of the man}^ hills we now saw growing out of the green valley ; among the dozen hill-tops, this one we were leaving was only more crowded than the others, and more gloriously crowned. In giant height uprose, above the city's roofs and the lesser towers, the spires and the lovely lantern tower. This vast mass of stone, joricked into lacy aper- tures and with its mighty lines of grace— for how many a long century has it been in the eye of the valley ? Tancrede de Hauteville saw it before William was born— before he, the Conqueror, rode 322 THREE NORMANDY INNS. in his turn through the green lanes to consecrate the church to One greater than he. From Tancrede to Boileau, what a succession of bishops, each in their turn, have had their eye on the great cathe- dral. There was a sort of viking bishop, one Geoffrey de Montbray, of the Conqueror's day, who, having a greater taste for men's blood than their purification, found Coutances a dull city ; there was more war of the kind his stout arm rejoiced in across the Channel : and so he travelled a bit to do a little pleasant killing. From Geoffrey to Boileau and the latter's lacy ruffles — how many a rude Norman epic was acted out, here in the val- ley, beneath the soaring spires, before the Homeric combat was turned into the verse of a chanson de gesfe, a Roman de Bou, or a Lutrin ! As Poulette rolled the wheels along, instead of visored bishop, or mail rustling on strong breasts, there was the open face of the landscape, and the tremble of the grasses beneath the touch of the wind. Coming down the hill was a very peaceable company : doubtless, between wars in those hot fighting centuries, just such travellers went up and down the hill-road as unconcernedly as did these peasants. There was quite a variety among the present groups : some were strictly family parties ; these talked little, giving their mind to stiff walk- ing — the smell of the soup in the farmyard kitchen was in their nostrils. The women's ages were more legibly read in their caps than in their faces — the older the women the prettier the caps. Among these groups, queens of the party, were some first communicants. Their white kid slippers were THREE NORMANDY INNS. 323 brown now, from the long walk in the city streets and the dust of the highway. They held their veils with a maiden's awkwardness ; with bent heads they leaned gravely on their fathers' arms. In this, their first supreme experience of self- consciousness, they had the self-absorption of young brides. The trail of their muslin gowns and the light cloud of their veils made dazzling spots of brightness in the delicate frame of the June landscape. Each of these white-clad figures was followed by a long train of friends and rela- tives. " G'est joli a voir — it's a pretty sight, hein, my la- dies ? — these young girls are beautiful like that ! " Our coachman took his eye off Poulette to turn in his seat, looking backward at the groups as they followed in our wake. " Ah — it was hard to leave my own — I had two like that, myself, in the pro- cession to-day." And the full Norman eye filled with a sudden moisture. This was a more attrac- tive glitter than the avarice of a moment be- fore. " You see, mesdames," he went on, as if wishing to excuse the moistened eyelids, " you see — it's a great day in the family when our children take their first communion. It is the day the child dies and the man, the woman is born. When our chil- dren kneel at our feet, before the j)riest, before their comrades, and beg us to forgive them all the sin they have done since they were born — it is too much — the heart grows so big it is near to burst- ing. Ah — it is then we all weep ! " Charm settled herself in her seat with a satis- 824 THREE NORMANDY INNS. fied smile. " We are in luck — an emotional coach- man who weeps and talks ! The five hours will fly," she murmured. Then aloud, to Jacques— as we learned the now sniffling father was called — she presently asked, with the oil of encouragement in her tone : " You say your two were in the procession ? " " Two ! there were five in all. Even the babies walked. Did you see Jesu and the Magdalen? They were mine — C'efait a moi, ga ! For the priests will have them — as many as they can get." " They are right. If the children didn't walk, how could the procession be so fine ? " " Fine — heau — ga ? " And there was a deep scorn in Jacques's voice. " You should have seen the fete twenty years ago ! Now, its glory is as nothing. It's the priests themselves who are to blame. They've spoiled it all. Years ago, the whole town walked. Dieu — what a spectacle ! The mayor, the mairie, all the firemen, municipal ofli- cers — yes, even the soldiers walked. And as for the singing — dame, all the young men were chor- isters then^we were trained for months. When we walked and sang in the open streets the singing filled all the town. It was like a great thunder," " And the change — why has it come ? " persisted Charm. " Oh," Jacques replied, caressing Poulette's haunches with his whip-lash. "It's the j^riests; they were too grasping. They are avaricious, that's what they are. They want everything for themselves. And a/efe — Qa coute, vous savez. Be- sides, the spirit of the times has changed. People THREE NORMANDY INNS. 325 aren't so devout now. Lihres 2)enseurs — that's the fashion now. Hold, Poulette ! " Poulette resx)onded. She dashed into the valley, , below us now, as if this rolling along- of a heavy- victoria, a lot of luggage, and three travellers, was an agreeable episode in her career of toil. But on the mind of her owner, the spectre of the free-thinkers was still hovering like an evil spirit. During the next hour he gave us a long and exhaust- ive exposition of the changes wrought by ces mes- sieurs qui nient le hon Diex. Among their crimes was to be numbered that of having disintegrated the morale of the peasantry. They — the peasants — no longer believed in miracles, and as for sorcery, for the good old superstitions, bah ! they were looked upon as old wives' tales. Even here, in the heart of this rural country, you would have to walk far before you could find une vraie sorciere, one who, by looking into a glass of water, for instance, could read the future as in a book, or one who, if your cow dried up, could name the evil spirit, the demon, who, among the peasants was exercising the curse. All this science was lost. A peasant would now be ashamed to bring his cow to a fortune-teller ; all the village would laugh. Even the shepherds had lost the power of communing with the planets at night ; and all the valley read the Petit Journal instead of consulting the vieiUes meres. One must go as far as Brittany to see a real peasant with the superstitions of a peasant. As for Normandy, it went in step with the rest of the world, que diahle ! And again the whip lash descended. Poulette must suffer for Jacques's disgust. 326 THREE NORMANDY INNS. If the Norman peasant was a modern, liis coun- try, at least, had retained the charm of its ancient beauty. The road was as Norman a highway as one could wish to see. It had the most capricious of natures, turning* and perversely twisting among the farms and uplands. The land was ribboned with growing grain, and the June grass was being cut. The farms stood close upon the roadway, as if longing for its companionship ; and then, having done so much toward the establishment of neigh- borly gossip, promptly turned their backs upon it — true Normans, all of them, with this their ap- pearance of frankness and their real reserves of secrecy. For a last time we caught a distant glimpse of the great cathedral. As we looked back across the bright-roofed villages, we saw the stately pile, gray, glorious, superb, dominating the scene, the hills, river, and fields, as in the old days the great city walls and the cathedral towers had dominated all the human life that played helplessly about them. We were out once more among the green and yellow broadlands ; between our carriage - wheels and the horizon there was now spread a wide am- phitheatre of wooded hills. The windings of the poplar-lined road serpentined in sinuous grace in and out of forests, meadows, hills, and islands. The afternoon lights were deepening ; the shad- ows on the grain-fields cast by the oaks and beeches were a part of our company. The blue bloom of the distant hills was strengthening into purple. As the light was intensifying in color, the human THREE NORMANDY INNS. 327 life in the fields was relaxing- its tension ; the bent backs were straightening", the ploughmen were whipping their steeds toward the open road ; for although it was Sunday, and a/e/e day, the farmer must work. The women were gathering up some of the grasses, tying them into bundles, and toss- ing them on their heads as they moved slowly across the blackening earth. One field near us was peoi:)led Avith a group of girls resting on their scythes. One or two among them were mopping their faces with their coarse blue aprons ; the faces of all w6re aflame with the red of rude health. As we came upon them, some had flung away their scythes, the tallest among the group grasping a near companion, playfull}^ in the pose of a wrestler. In an instant the company was turned into a group of wrestlers. There was a great shout of laughter, as maiden af- ter maiden was tumbled over on her back or face amid the grasses. Sabots, short skirts, kerchiefs, scarlet arms rose and fell to earth in the mad whirl of their gayety. " Stop, Jacques, I must see the end," cried Charm. " AYill they fight or dance, I wonder ! " " Oh, it is a pure Georgic — they'll dance." They were dancing already. The line, with dis- hevelled hair, aprons and kerchiefs askew, had formed into the square of a quadrille. A rude measure was tripped ; a snatch of song, shouted amid the laughter, gave rhythm to the measure, and then the whole band, singing in chorus, linked arms and swept with a furious dash be- neath the thatched roof of a low farmhouse. 328 THREE NORMANDY INNS. "As you see, my ladies, sometimes the fields are gay — even now," was Jacques's comment. " But they should be getting- their grasses in — foi it'll rain before night. It's time to sing when the scythe sleeps — as we say here." To our eyes there were no signs of rain. The clouds rolling in the blue sea above us were only gloriously lighted. But the birds and the peas- ants knew their sky ; there was a great fluttering of wings among the branches ; and the peasants, as we rattled in and out of the hamlets, were pull- ing the reposoirs to pieces in the haste that pre- dicts bad weather. They had been " celebrating" all along the road; and besides the piety, the Norman thrift was abroad upon the highway. Women were tearing sheets off the house fa5ades ; the lads and girls were bearing crosses, china vases, and highly-colored Virgins from the wood- en altars into the low houses. Presently the great drops fell ; they beat upon the smooth roadway like so many hard bits of coin. In less than two ticks of the clock, the world was a wet world ; there were masses of soft gray clouds that were like so much cotton, drip- ping with moisture. The earth was as drenched as if, half an hour ago, it had not been a jewel gleaming in the sun ; and the very farm-houses had quickly assumed an air of having been caught out in the rain without an umbrella. The farm gardens alone seemed to rejoice in the suddenness of the shower. Flowers have a way of shining, when it rains, that proves flower-petals have a woman's love of solitaires. THREE XOR.VAyDY IXXS. 320 There were other clashes of color that made the gray landscape astouishiugly brilliant. Some of the peasants on their wny to the village /c/cs were also caught in the passing shower. They had opened their wide blue and purple umbrellas ; these latter made huge disks of color reflected in the glass of the wet macadam. The women had turned their l)lack alpaca and cashmere skirts in- side out, tucking the edges about their stout hips; beneath the" wide vivid circles of the drip- ping umbrellas these brilliantly colored under- petticoats showed a liberal revelation of scarlet hose and thick ankles sunk in the freshly polished black sabots. The men's cobalt-blue blouses and their peaked felt hats spotted the landscape with contrasting notes and outlines. After the last peaked hat had disappeared into the farm enclosures, we and the wet landscape had the rain to ourselves. The trees now were spec- tral shapes ; they could not be relied on as com- panions. Even the gardens and grain lands were mysteriously veiled, so close rolled the mists to our carriage- Avheels. Bej^oncl, at the farthest end of the road, these mists had formed themselves into a solid, compact mass. The clouds out 3'onder, far ahead, seemed to be enwrapping some pavt of earth that had lanced it- self into the sky. After a little the eyes unconsciously watched those distant woolly masses. There was a some- thing beyond, faint, vague, impalpable as yet, which the rolling mists begirt as sometimes they cincture an Alpine needle. Even as the thought 830 THREE NORMANDY INNS. came, a sudden lifting- of the gray mass showed the point of a hig-h uplifted pinnacle. The point thereof pricked the sky. Then the wind, like a strong' hand, swept the clouds into a mantle, and we saw the strange spectacle no more. For several miles our way led us through a dim, phantasmal landscape. All the outlines were blurred. Even the rain was a veil ; it fell between us and the nearest hedgerows as if it had been a curtain. The jingling- of Poulette's bell-collar and the gurgle of the water rushing in the gulleys — these were the only sounds that fell upon the ear. Still the clouds about that distant mass curled and rolled ; they were now breaking, now re-form- ing — as if some strange and wondrous thing- were hanging- there — between heaven and earth. It was still far out, the mass ; even the lower mists were not resting on any plain of earth. They also were moved by something- that moved beneath them, as a thick cloak takes the shape and mo- tion of the body it covers. Still we advanced, and still the great mountain of cloud g-rew and g-rew. And then there came a little lisping, hiss- ing sound. It was the kiss of the sea as it met some unseen shore. And on our cheeks the sea- wind blew, soft and salty to the lips. The mass was taking- shape and outline. The mists rolled along- some wide, broad base that rested beneath the sea, and skyward they clasped the apexal point of a pyramid. This pyramid in the sky was Mont St. Michel. With its feet in the sea, and its head vanishing into infinity — here, at last, was this rock of rocks, TETtEE NORMANDY INNS. 331 caught, phantom-like, up into the very heavens above. It loomed out of the spectral landscape — itself the superlative spectre ; it took its flig-ht upward as might some genius of beauty enrobed in a shroud of mystery. Such has it been to generations of men. Beau- tiful, remote, mysterious ! With its altars and its shrines, its miracle of stone carved by man on those other stones hewn by the wind and the tem- pest, Mont St. Michel has ever been far more a part of heaven than a thing of earth. Then, for us, the clouds suddenly lifted, as, for modern generations of men, the mists of super- stition have also rolled themselves away. MONT ST. MICHEL: AN INN ON A ROCK. r.' i. >jt }5- -X. CHAPTEE XXIX. BY SEA TO THE POULABD INN. We were being- tossed in the air like so many balls. A Normandy ckar-a-hanc was proving itself no re- specter of nice distinc- tions in conditions in life. It phlipped, dashed, and rolled us about with no more concern than if it were taking us to market to be sold by the pound. For we were on the greve. The promised rivers were before us. So was the Mont, si^ec- tral no longer, but nearing with every plunge forward of our sturdy young Percheron. Loco- motion through any new or untried medium is certain to bring with the experiment a dash of elation. Now, driving through water appears to be no longer the fashion in our fastidious cen- tury ; someone might get a wetting", possibly, has been the conclusion of the prudent. And thus a very innocent and exciting bit of fun has been 336 THREE NORMANDY INNS. gradually relegated among the lost arts of pleas- ure. We were taking water as we had never taken it before, and liking the method. We were as wet as ducks, but what cared we ? We were be- ing deluged with spray; the spume of the sea was spurting in our faces with the force of a strong wet breeze, and still we liked it. Besides, driving thus into the white foam of the waters, over the sand ridges, across the downs, into the wide plains of wet mud, this was the old classical way of going up to the Mont. Surely, what had been found good enough as a pathway for kings and saints and pilgrims should be good enough for two lovers of old-time methods. The dike yonder was built for those who believe in the devil of haste, and for those who also serve him faithfully. Someone else besides ourselves was enjoying our drive through the waves. Our gay young Normandy driver seemed to find an exquisite relish in the spectacle of our wet faces and un- stable figures. He could not keep his eyes off us ; they fairly glistened with the dew of his enjoy- ment. Two ladies pitched and rolled about, ex- actly as if they were peasants, and laughing as if they were children — this was a spectacle and a keen appreciation of a joke that brought joy to a rustic blouse. " Ah — ah ! mesdames ! " he cried, exultingly, be- tween the gasps of his own laughter, as he tossed his own fine head in the air, sitting on his rude bench, covered with sheepskin, as if it had been THREE NORMANDY INNS. 337 an armchair. " Ah, ah ! mesclames, you didn't ex- pect this, liein ? You hoped for a hxndau, and feathers and cushions, perhajis ? But soft feath- ers and springs are not for the greve." " Is it dauo-erous ? are there deep holes ? " " Oh, the holes, they are as nothing-. It is the quicksands we fear. But it is only a little dan- ger, and danger makes the charm of travel, is it not so, my ladies ? Adventure, that is what one travels for ! Hid ! Fend I'Air ! " It had occurred to us before that we had been uncommonly lucky in our coachmen, as well as in the names of the horses, that had brightened our journey. In spite of Juliet, whose disdain of the virtue or the charm that lies in a name is no more worthy of respect than is am" lover's opinion when in the full-orbed foolishness of his lunacy, I believe names to be a very effective adjunct to life's scenic setting. Most of the horses we had had along these Normandy high-roads, had an- swered to names that had helped to italicize the features of the country. Could Poulette, the sturdy little mare, with whom onl}' an hour ago we had parted forever, have been given a better sobri- quet by which to have identified for us the fat landscape ? And now here was Fend I'Air proving good his talent for cleaving through space, what- ever of land or sea la}' in his path. " And he merits his name, my lady," his driver announced with grave pride, as he looked at the huge haunches with a loving eye. " He can go, oh, but as the wind ! It is he who makes of the crossing but as if it were nothing ! " 338 THREE NORMANDY INNS. The crossing- ! That was the key-note of the way the coast spoke of the Mont. The rock out yonder was a country apart, a bit of land or stone the shore claimed not, had no part in, felt to be as remote as if it were a foreign province. At Ge- nets the village spoke of the Mont as one talks of a distant land. Even the journey over the sands was looked upon with a certain seriousness. A starting- forth was the signal for the village to as- semble about the char-d-banc's wheels. Quite a large company for a small village to muster was grouped about our own vehicle, to look on gravely as we mounted to the rude seat within. The vil- lagers gave us their " bonjours " with as much fer- vor as if we were starting forth on a sea voyage. " You will have a good crossing ! " cackled one of the old men, nodding toward the peak in the sky, " The sands may be wet, but they are firm al- ready ! " added a huge peasant— the fattest man in all the canton, whisperingly confided the landlady, as one proud of possessing a village curiosity. "Hid, Fend I'Air! attention, toil" Fend I'Air tossed his fine mane, and struck out with a will over the cobbles. But his di-iver was only pos- ing for the assembled village. He was in no real haste; there was a fresh voice singing yonder in his mother's tavern; the sentimentalist in him was on edge to hear the end of the song. " Do you hear that, mesdames ? There's no such singing as that out of Paris. One must go to a cafe " " Allons, toi I " shrieked his mother's voice, as THREE NORMANDY INNS. 339 her face darkened. "Do you think these ladies want to spend the night on the gi^eve ? Depeches- toi, vaurien ! " And she gave the wheels a shove with her strong hand, whereat all the village laughed. But the good-for-nothing son made no haste as the song went on — " Le ban vin vnefait dormir^ V amour me reveil " He continued to cock his head on one side and to let his eyes dream a bit. Within, a group of peasants was gathered about the inn table. There were some young girls seated among the blouses ; one of them, for the hour that we had sat waiting for Fend I'Air to be captured and harnessed, had been singing songs of questionable taste in a voice of such contralto sweetness as to have touched the heart of a bishop. " Some young girls from the factories at Avranches, mesdames, who come here Sundays to get a bit of fresh air ; Dieu sait si elles en out besoin, 2muvres enfanfs ! " was the landlady's charitable explana- tion. It appeared to us that the young ladies from Avranches were more in need of a moral than a climatic change. But then, we also charitably re- flected, it makes all the difference in the world, in these nice questions of taste and morality, whether one has had as an inheritance a past of Francis I. and a Eabelais, or of Calvin and a Puritan con- science. The geese on the green downs, just below the village, had clearly never even heard of Calvin; 340 THREE NORMANDY INNS. they were luxuriatiug- in a series of plunges into the deep pools in a way to prove complete igno- rance of nice Sabbatarian laws. With our first toss upon the clowns, a world of new and fresh exioeriences began. Genets was quite right ; the Mont over yonder was another country; even at the very beginning of the journey we learned so much. This breeze blow- ing in from the sea, that had swept the ramparts of the famous rock, was a double extract of the sea-essence ; it had all the salt of the sea and the aroma of firs and wild flowers ; its lips had not kissed a garden in high air without the perfume lingering, if only to betray them. Even this strip of meadow marsh had a character peculiar to itself ; half of it belonged to earth and half to the sea. You might have thought it an inland pasture, with its herds of cattle, its flocks of sheep, and its colonies of geese— patrolled by ragged urchins. But behold, somewhere out yonder the pasture was lost in high sea-waves ; ships with bulging sails replaced the curve of the cattle's sides, and in- stead of bending necks of sheep, there were sea- gulls swooping down upon the foamy waves. As the incarnation of this dual life of sea and land, the rock stands. It also is both of the sea and the land. Its feet are of the waters — rocks and stones the sea-waves have used as playthings these millions of years. But earth regains pos- session as the rocks pile themselves into a moun- tain. Even from this distance, one can see the moving arms of great trees, the masses of yellow flower-tips that dye the sides of the stony hill, THREE NORMAN Bt INNS. 341 and the strips of green gfrass here and there. So much has nature done for this wonderful pyramid in the sea. Then man came and fashioned it to his liking-. He piled the stones at its base into titanic walls ; he carved about its sides the round- ed breasts of bastions ; he i^iled higher and hig-her up the dizzy heights a medley of palaces, con- vents, abbeys, cloisters, to lay at the A'ery top the fitting crown of all, a jewelled Norman-Gothic cathedral. Earth and man have thrown their gauntlet down to the sea — this rock is theirs, they cry to the waves and the might of oceans. And the sea laughs — as strong- men laug-h when boys are angry or insistent. She has let them build and toil, and pray and fight ; it is all one to her what is done on the rock — whether men carve its stones into lace, or rot and die in its dungeons ; it is all the same to her whether each spring the daffodils creep up within the crevices and the irises nod to them from the gardens. It is all one to her. For twice a day she re- captures the Mont. She encircles it with the strong arm of her tides ; with the might of her waters she makes it once more a thing- of the sea. The tide was rising now. The fringe of the downs had dabbled in the shoals till they had become one. We had left behind the last of the shepherd lads, come out to the edge of the land to search for a wandering kid. We were all at once plunging into high water. Our road was sunk out of sight : we were driving through waves as high as our cart-wheels. 342 THREE NOBMANDT INNS. Fend I'Air was shivering' ; lie was as a- tremble as a woman. Tlie heig-ht of the rivers was not to his liking. " Sacre faineant ! " yelled his owner, treating the tremor to a mighty crack of the whip. " Is he afraid ? " " Yes — when the water is as high as that, he is always afraid. Ah, there he is — diantre, but he took his time ! " he growled, but the growl was set in the key of relief. He was pointing toward a fig- ure that was leaping toward us through the water. " It is the guide ! " he added, in explanation. The guide was at Fend I'Air's shoulder. Very little of him was above water, but that little was as brown as an Egyptian. He was puffing and blowing like unto a porpoise. In one hand he held a huge pitchfork — the trident of this watery Mercury. " Shall I conduct you ? " he asked, dipping the trident as if in salute, into the water, as he still puffed and gasped. " If you please," as gravely responded our dri- ver. For though up to our cart-wheels and breasts in deep water, the formalities were not to be dis- pensed with, you understand. The guide placed himself at once in front of Fend I'Air, whose shivers as quickly disappeared. " You see, mesdames — the guide gives him cour- age — and he now knows no fear," cried out with pride our whip on the outer bench. " And what news, Victor — is there any ? " It was of the Mont he was asking. And the guide replied, taking an extra plunge into deep water : THREE NORMANDY INNS. 343 "Oh, not mucli. There's to be a wedding to- morrow and a pilgrimage the next day. Madame Poulard has only a handful as yet. Ces dames descend doubtless at Madame Poulard's — ceUe qui fait les omelettes ? " The ladies were ignorant as yet of the accomplishments of the said landlady ; they had only heard of her beauty. " C'est elle," gravely chorussed the guide and the driver, both nodding their heads as their eyes met. " Fameuse, sa heaute, comme son omelette," as gravely added our driver. The beauty of this lady and the fame of her ome- lette were very sobering, apparently, in their ef- fects on the mind ; for neither guide nor driver had another word to sa}^ Still the guide plunged into the rivers, and Fend I'Air followed him. Our cart still pitched and tossed — we were still rocked about in our rough cradle. But the sun, now freed from the banks of clouds, was lighting our wa}^ with a great and sud- den glory. And for the rest of our watery jour- ney we were conscious only of that lighting. Be- hind the Mont, lay a vast sea of saffron. But it was in the sky ; against it the great rock was as black as if the night were ui^on it. Here and there, through the curve of a flying buttress, or the apertures of a pierced parapet, gay bits of this yellow world were caught and framed. The sea lay beneath like a quiet carpet ; and over this car- pet ships and sloops swam with easy gliding motion, with sails and cordage dipped in gold. The smaller craft, moored close to shore, seemed transfigured as in a fog of gold. And nearer still 344 THREE NORMANDY INNS. were the brown walls of the Mont making a great shadow, and in the shadow the waters were as black as the skin of an African. In the shoals there were lovely masses of turquoise and pal- est green ; for here and there a cloudlet passed, to mirror their complexions in the translucent pools. But Fend I'Air's hoofs had struck a familiar note. His iron shoes were clicking along the macadam of the dike. There was a rapid dashing ' beneath the great walls ; a sudden night of dark- ness as we plunged through an open archway into a narrow village street ; a confused impres- sion of houses built into side -walls ; of machico- lated gateways ; of rocks and roof-tops tumbling about our ears ; and within the street was sound- ing the babel of a shrieking troop of men and women. Porters, peasants, lads, and children were clamoring about our cart-wheels like unto so many jackals. The bedlam did not cease as we stopped before a wide, brightly -lit open doorway. Then through the doorway there came a tall, finely - featured brunette. She made her way through the yelling crowd as a duchess might cleave a jiath through a rabble. She was at the side of the cart in an instant. She gave us a bow and smile that were both a welcome and an act of appropriation. She held out a firm, soft, brown hand. When it closed on our own, we knew it to be the grasp of a friend, and the clasp of one who knew how to hold her world. But when she spoke the words were all of velvet, and her voice had the cadence of a caress. THREE NORMANDY INNS. 345 " I have been watching you, cheres dames — cross- ing- the greve — but how wet and weary you must be ! Come in by the fire, it is ablaze now — I have been feeding- it for you ! " And once more the beautifully curved lips parted over the fine teeth, and the exceeding brightness of the dark eyes smiled and glittered in our own. The caress- ing- voice still led us forward, into the great gay kitchen ; the touch of skilful, discreet fingers un- did wet cloaks and wraps ; the soft charm of a lovely and g-racious woman made even the pene- trating warmth of the hug-e fire-logs a secondary feature of our welcome. To those who have never crossed a greve ; who have had no jolting in a Normandy char-d-hanc ; who, for hours, have not known the mixed pleasures and discomfort of be- ing a part of sea-rivers ; and who have not been met at the threshold of an Inn on a Rock by the smiling- welcome of Madame Poulard — all such have yet a pleasant page to read in the book of travelled experience. Meanwhile somewhere, in an inner room, things sweet to the nostrils were cooking-. Maids were tripping- up and down stairs with covered dishes ; there was the pleasant clicking- in the ear of the lids of things; dishes or pans or jars were being- lifted. And more delicious to the ear than even the promise to starving mouths of food, and of red wine to the lip, was the continuing music of ma- dame's voice, as she stood over us purring- with content at seeing her travellers drying: and being- thoroughly warmed. " The dinner-bell must soon be rung, dear ladies ; I delayed it as long as I 346 THREE NORMANDY INNS. dared — I gauged your progress across from the terrace — I have kept all my people waiting ; for your first dinner here must be hot ! But now it rings ! Shall I conduct you to your rooms ? " I have no doubt that, even without this brunette beauty, with her olive cheek and her comely fig- ure as guides, we should have gone the way she took us in a sort of daze. One cannot pass un- der machicolated gateways; rustle between the walls of fourteenth century fortifications ; climb a stone stairway that begins in a watch-tower and ends in a rampart, with a great sea view, and with the breadth of all the land shoreward ; walk calmly over the top of a king's ^ate, with the arms of a bishop and the shrine of the Virgin beneath one's feet ; and then, presently, begin to climb the side of a rock in which rude stone steps have been cut, till one lands on a miniature terrace, to find a pre- posterously sturdy-looking house aflixed to a ri- diculous ledge of rock that has the presumption to give shelter to a hundred or more travellers — ground enough, also, for rows of plane-trees, for honeysuckles, and rose-vine, with a full coquet- tish equipment of little tables and iron chairs — no such journey as that up a rock was ever taken with entirely sober eyes. Although her people were waiting below, and the dinner was on its way to the cloth, Madame Poulard had plenty of time to give to the beauty about her. How fine was the outlook from the top of the ramparts ! What a fresh sensation, this, of standing on a terrace in mid-air and looking down on the sea, and across to the level shores I THREE NORMANDY INNS. 347 The rose-vines — we found them sweet — tieiis — one of the branches had fallen — she had full time to re-adjust the loosened support. And " Marianne, give these ladies their hot water, and see to their bags — " even this order was given with courtesy. It was only when the supple, agile figui'e had left us to fly down the steep rock-cut steps ; when it shot over the top of the gateway and slid with the grace of a lizard into the street far below us, that we were made sensible of there having been any especial need of madame's being in haste. That night, some three hours later, a pictur- esque group was assembled about this same sup- ple figure. A pretty, and unlooked-for ceremony was about to take place. It was the ceremony of the lighting of the lan- terns. In the great kitchen, in the dance of the fire- light and the glow of the lamps, some seven or eight of us were being equipped with Chinese lanterns. This of itself was an engaging sight. Madame Poulard was always gay at this perform- ance — for it meant much innocent merriment among her guests, and with the lighting of the last lantern, her own day was done. So the brill- iant eyes flashed with a fresh fire, and the olive cheek glowed anew. All the men and women laughed as children sputter laughter, when they are both pleased and yet a little ashamed to show their pleasure. It was so very ridiculous, this journey up a rock with a Chinese lantern ! But just because it was ridiculous, it was also delight- ful. One — two — three — seven — eight — they were 348 THREE NORMANDY INNS. all lit. The last male guest liad touched his cap to madame, exchang-ing the " bonne nuit " a man only gives to a pretty woman, and that which a woman returns who feels that her beauty has re- ceived its just meed of homage ; madame's figure stood, still smiling, a radiant benedictory pres- ence, in the doorway, with the great glow of the firelight behind her ; the last laugh echoed down the street— and behold, darkness was upon us ! The street was as black as a cavern. The strip of sky and the stars above seemed almost day, by contrast. The great arch of the Porte du Eoi en- gulphed us, and then, slowly groping our way, we toiled up the steps to the open ramparts. Here the keen night air swept rudely through our cloaks and garments ; the sea tossed beneath the bastions like some restless tethered creature, that showed now a gray and now a purple coat, and the stars were gold balls that might drop at any instant, so near they were. The men shivered and buttoned their coats, and the women laughed, a trifle shrilly, as they grasped the floating bui'nous closer about their faces and shoulders. And the lanterns' beams danced a strange dance on the stone flagging. Once more we were lost in darkness. We were passing through the old guard-house. And then slowly, more slowly than ever, the lanterns were climbing the steps cut in the rock. Hands groped in the blackness to catch hold of the iron railing ; the laughter had turned into little shouts and gasps for help. And then one of the lanterns THREE NORMANDY INNS. 349 played a treacherous trick ; it showed the backs of two figures g-roiDiug upward together — about one of the g-irlish figures a man's arm was flung. As suddenly the noise of the cries was stilled. The lanterns played their fitful light on still other objects. They illumined now a vivid yellow shrub ; they danced upon a roof-top ; they flood- ed, with a sudden circlet of brilliance, the awful depths below of the swirling waters and of rocks that were black as a bottomless pit. Then the terrace was reached. And the lan- terns danced a last gay little dance among the roses and the vines before, Poufie ! Pouffe ! and behold ! they were all blown out. Thus it was we went to bed on the Mont. CHAPTEE XXX. AN mSTOEICAL OMELETTE. — THE PILGRIMS AND THE SHEINE. ^To awake on a hill-top at sea. This was what morning- brought. Crowd this hill with houses plastered to the sides of rocks, with great walls girdling it, with tiny gardens lodged in crevices, and with a forest tumbling seaward. Let this hill yield you a town in which to walk, with a street of many- storied houses ; with other promenades along ram- parts as broad as church aisles; with dungeons, cloisters, halls, guard-rooms, abbatial gateways, and a cathedral whose flying buttresses seemed to spring- from mid-air and to end in a cloud — such was the world into which we awoke on the heights of Mont St. Michel. The verdict of the shore on the hill had been a just one ; this world on a rock was a world apart. This hill in the sea had a detached air — as if, though French, at heart a true Gaul, it had had from the beginning of things a life of adventure peculiar to itself. The shore, at best, had been THREE NORMANDY INNS. 351 only a foster-mother ; the hill was the true child of the sea. Since its birth it has had a more or less enforced separateness, in experience, from the country to which it belonged. Whether temple or fortress, whether forest-clad in virginal fierce- ness of aspect, or subdued into beauty by the touch of man's chisel, its destiny has ever been the same — to suffice unto itself — to be, in a word, a world in miniature. The Mont proved by its appearance its history in adventure ; it had the grim, grave, battered look that comes only to features, whether of rock or of more plastic human mould — that have been carved by the rough handling of exjjerience. It is the common habit of hills and mountains, as we all know, to turn disdainful as they grow skyward ; the}^ only too eagerly drop, one by one, the things by which man has marked the earth for his own. To stand on a mountain top and to go down to your grave are alike, at least in this — that you have left everything, except yourself, be- hind you. But it is both the charm and the tri- umph of Mont St. Michel, that it carries so much of man's liandiAvork up into the blue fields of air ; this achievement alone would mark it as unique among hills. It appears as if for once man and nature had agreed to work in concert to produce a masterpiece in stone. The hill and the archi- tectural beauties it carries aloft, are like a taunt flung out to sea and to the upper heights of air; for centuries thej^ appear to have been crying aloud, " See what we can do, against your tempests and your futile tides — when we try." 352 THREE NORMANDY INNS. On that particular morning", the taunt seemed more like an epithalamium — such marriage-lines did sea and sky appear to be reading- over the glistening face of the rock. June had pitched its tent of blue across the seas ; all the world was blue, except where the sun smote it into gold. To eyes in love with beauty, what a world at one's feet ! Beneath that azure roof, toward the west, was the world of water, curling, dimpling, like some human thing charged with the conscious joy of dancing in the sun. Shoreward, the more stable earth was in the Moslem's ideal posture — that of perpetual prostration. The Brittany coast was a long, flat, green band ; the rocks of Cancale were brown, but scarcely higher in point of elevation than the sand-hills : the Normandy forests and orchards were rii3pling lines that focussed into the sjairal of the Avranches cathedral spires ; floating between the two blues, hung the aerial shapes of the Chaunsey and the Channel Islands ; and nearer, along the coast-line, were the fringing edges of the shore, broken with shoals and shal- lows — earth's fingers, as it were, touching the sea — playing, as Coleridge's Abyssinian maid fingered the dulcimer, that music that haunts the poet's ear. We were seated at the little iron tables, on the terrace. We were sipping our morning coffee, beneath the plane-trees. The terrace, a foot be- yond our coffee-cups, instantly began its true ca- reer as a precipice. We, ourselves, seemed to have begun as suddenly our own flight heaven- ward — on such astonishing terms of intimacy were we with the sky. The clapping close to our ears THREE NORMANDY INNS. 353 of large- wing-ed birds ; the swirling- of tlie circling sea-gulls; the amazing nearness of the cloud draper}' — all this gave us the sense of being in a new world, and of its being a strangely pleasant one. Suddenly a cock's crow, shrill and clear, made us start from the luxurious languor of our content- ment ; for we had scarcely looked to find poultry on this Hill of Surprises. Turning in the direction of the homely, familiar note, we beheld a garden. In this garden walked the cock — a two-legged gentleman of gorgeous plumage- If abroad for purely constitutional purposes, the crowing chan- ticleer must be forced to pass the same objects many times in review. Of all infinitesimal, micro- scopic gardens, this one, surely, was a model in minuteness. Yet it was an entirely self-respect- ing little garden. It was not much larger than a generous-sized pocket-handkerchief : yet how much talent — for growing — may be hidden in a yard of soil — if the soil have the right virtue in it. Here were two rocks forming, with a fringe of cliff, a tri- angle ; in that tri-cornered bit of earth a lively crop of growing vegetables was offering flatter- ing signs of promise to the owner's eye. ^liere all land runs aslant, as all land does on this Mont, not an inch was to be wasted ; up the rocks i^each and pear-split trees were made to climb — and why should they not, since everything else — since man himself must climb from the moment he touches the base of the hill ? Following the cock's call, came the droning sweetness of bees ; the rose and the honeysuckle 354 THREE NORMANDY INNS. vines were loading- the morning air with the per- fume of their invitations. Then a human voice drowned the bees' whirring, and a face as fresh and as smiling as the day stood beside us. It was the voice and the face of Madame Poulard, on the round of her morning inspections. Our table and the radiant world at her feet were included in this, her line of observations. "Ah, mesdames, comme vous savez Men vous placei^ ! — how admirably you understand how to place yourselves ! Under such a sky as this — be- fore such a spectacle — one should be in the front row, as at a theatre ! " And that was the beginning- of our deeds finding favor in the eyes of Madame Poulard. It was our happy fate to di-ink many a morning- cup of cofiee at those little iron tables ; to have many a prolonged chat with the charming land- lady of the famous inn; to become as familiar with the glories and splendors of the historical hill as with the habits and customs of the world that came up to view them. For here our journey was to end. The comedy of life, as it had played itself out in Normandy inns, was here, in this Inn on a Eock, to give us a series of farewell performances. On no other stage, we were agreed, could the versatile French character have had as admirable and pict- uresque a setting ; and surelj% on no other bit of French soil could such an astonishing and amaz- ing variety of types be assembled for a final ap- pearance, as came up, day after day, to make the tour of the Mont. THREE NORMANDY INNS. 355 To the shore, and for the whole of the near-lying Breton and Norman rustic world, the Mont is still the Hill of Delight. It is their Alp, their shrine, the tenth wonder of the world, a j)rison, a palace, and a temple still. In spite of Parisian changes in religious fashions, the blouse is still devout ; for curiosity is the true religion of the provincial, and all love of adventure did not die out with the Crusades. Therefore it is that rustic France along this coast still makes pilgrimages to the shrine of the Archangel St. Michael. No marriage is rightly arranged which does not include a wedding- jour- ney across the r/reve ; no nuptial breakfast is aure- oled with the true halo of romance which is eaten elsewhere than on these heights in mid-air. The young come to di-ink deep of wonders; the old, to refresh the depleted fountains of memory ; and the tourist, behold, he is as a plague of locusts let loose upon the defenceless hill ! After a fortnight's sojourn, Charm and I held many a grave consultation ; close observation of this world that climbed the heights had bred cer- tain strange misgivings. What was it this world of sight-seers came up to the Mont for to see ? Was it to behold the great glories thereof, or was it, oh, human eye of man ! to look on the face of a charming woman % It was impossible, after sojourning a certain time upon the hill, not to concede that there were two equally strong cen- tres of attractions, that drew the world hither- ward. One remained, indeed, gravely suspended between the doubt and the fear, as to which of 356 THREE NORMANDY INNS. these potential units had the greater pull, in point of actual attraction. The impartial histo- rian, given to a just weighing of evidence, would have been startled to find how invariably the scales tipped; how lightly an historical Mont, born of a miracle, crowned by the noblest build- ings, a pious Mecca for saints and kings in- numerable, shot up like feathers in lightness when over-weighted by the modern realities of a perfectly appointed inn, the cooking and eat- ing of an omelette of omelettes, and the all-con- quering charms of Madame Poulard. The fog of doubt thickened as, day after day, the same scenes were enacted ; when one beheld all sorts and con- ditions of men similarly affected; when, again and again, the potentiality in the human magnet was proved true. Doubt turned to conviction, at the last, that the holy shrine of St. Michael had, in truth, been violated ; that the Mont had been desecrated ; that the latter exists now solely as a setting for a pearl of an inn ; and that within the shrine— it is Madame Poulard herself who fills the niche ! The pilgrims come from darkest Africa and the sunlit Yosemite, but they remain to pray at the Inn of the Omelette. Yonder, on the greves, as we ourselves had proved, one crosses the far seas and one is wet to the skin, only to hear the praises sung of madame's skill in the handling of eggs in a pan ; it is for this the lean guide strides before the pilgrim tourist, and that he dippeth his trident in the waters. At the great gates of the fortifications the pilgrim descends, THREE NORMANDY INNS. 357 and behold, a howling- chorus of serving-people take up the chant of : " Chez Madame Poulard, a gauche, a Ja renommee de VomeJette I " The inner walls of the to^vn lend themselves to their last and best estate, that of proclaiming- the glory of " L Omelette." Placards, rich in indicative illus- trations of hands all forefingers, point, with a directness never vouchsafed the sinner eager to find the way to right and duty, to the inn of " L' Incomparable, la Fameuse Omelette ! " The pil- grims meekly descend at that shrine. They bow low to the worker of the modern miracle ; they pass with eager, trembling foot, into the inner sanctorum, to the kitchen, where the presiding deity receives them with the grace of a queen and the simplicity of a saint. Life on the Mont, as we soon found, resolved itself into this — into so arranging one's day as to be on hand for the great, the eventful hour. In point of fact there were two such hours in the Mont St. Michel day. There was the hour of the cook- ing of the omelette. There was always the other really more tragic hour, of the coming across the dike, of the huge lumbering omnibuses. For you see, that although one may be beautiful enough to compete successfully against dead-and-gone saints, against worn-out miracles, and wonders in stcne, human nature, when it is alive, is hu- man nature still. It is the curse of success, the world over, to arouse jealousy ; and we all have lived long enough to know that jealousy's evil- browed offspring are named Hate and Competi- tion. Up yonder, beyond the Porte du Eoi, ri- 358 THREE NORMANDY INNS. valry has set up a counter-shrine, with a compe- ting saint, with all the hateful accessories of a pretty face, a younger figure, and a graceful if less skilled aptitude in the making of omelettes in public. The hour of the coming in of the coaches, was, therefore, a tragic hour. On the arrival of the coaches Madame was at her post long before the pilgrims came up to her door. Being entirely without personal vanity — since she felt her beauty, her cleverness, her grace, and her charm to be only a part of the capital of the inn trade — a higher order of the stock in trade, as it were — she made it a point to look hand- somer on the arrival of coaches than at any other time. Her cheeks were certain to be rosier; her bird's head was always carried a trifle more tak- ingly, perched coquettishly sideways, that the caressing smile of welcome might be the more personal ; and as the woman of business, lining the saint, so to speak, was also present, into the deep pockets of the blue-checked apron, the cal- culating fingers were thrust, that the quick count- ing of the incoming guests might not be made too obvious an action. After such a pose, to see a pilgrim escape ! To see him pass by, unmoved by that smile, turning his feelingless back on the true shrine ! It was enough to melt the stoutest heart. Madame's welcome of the captured, after such an affront, was set in the minor key ; and her smile was the smile of a suffering angel. " Cours, nion enfant, run, see if he descends or if THREE NORMAXDY INNS. 359 lie pushes on ; tell him / am Madame Poulard ! " This, a low command murmured between a hun- dred orders, still in the minor ke\-, would be purred to Clementine, a peasant in a cap, exceed- ing fleet of foot, and skilled in the capture of wandering" sheep. And Clementine would follow that stray pil- grim : she would attack him in the open street ; would even climb after him, if need be, up the steep rock-steps, till, proved to be following strange gods, he would be brought triumphantly back to the kitchen-shrine, by Clementine, puf- fing, but exultant. " Ah, monsieur, how could you pass us by ? " madame's soft voice would murmur reproachfully in the pilgrim's ear And the i^ilgrim, abashed, ashamed, would quickly make answer, if ho were bom of the right parents : " Chere madame, how was I to believe my eyes ? It is ten years since I was here, and you are j^ounger, more beautiful than ever ! I was going in search of your moth- er I " at which needless truism all the kitchen would laugh. Madame Poulard herself would find time for one of her choicest smiles, although this was the great moment of the working of the miracle. She was beginning to cook the ome- lette. The head-cook was beating the eggs in a great yellow bowl. Madame had already taken her stand at the yawning Louis XY. fireplace; she was beginning gently to balance the huge casserole over the glowing logs. And all the pilgrims were standing about, watching ths process. Now, the 360 THREE NORMANDY INNS. group circling about tlie great fireplace was scarcely ever tlie same : the i^ilgrims presented a different face and garb day after day — but in point of hunger they were as one man ; they were each and all as unvaryingly hungry as only tourists could be, who, clamoring for food, have the smell of it in their nostrils, with the added ache of emptiness gnawing within. But besides hunger, each one of the pilgrims had brought with him a pair of eyes ; and what eyes of man can be jaure savage before the spectacle of a pretty woman cooking, for him, before an open fire *? Therefore it was that still another miracle was wrought, that of turning a famished mob into a buzzing swarm of admirers. " 3Iais si, monsieur, in this pan I can cook an omelette large enough for you all : you will see. Ah, madame, you are off already ? Celestine ! Madame's bill, in the desk yonder. And you, monsieur, you too leave us ? Deux cognacs ? Vic- tor — deux cognacs et une demi-tasse pour mon- sieur ! " These and a hundred other answers and ques- tions and orders, were uttered in a fluted voice or in a tone of sharp command, by the miracle-worker, as the pan was kei)t gently turning, and the eggs were poured in at just the right moment — not one of the pretty poses of head and wrist being forgot- ten. Madame Poulard, like all clever women who are also pretty, had two voices : one was dedicated solely to the working of her charms ; this one was soft, melodious, caressing, the voice of dove when cooing ; the other, used for strictly business pur- THREE NOBMANDY INNS. 361 poses, was set in the quick, metallic staccato tones proj)er for such occasions. The dove's voice was trolling- its sweetness, as she went on " Eggs, monsieur ? How many I use ? Ah, it is in the season that counting the dozens becomes difficult — seventy dozen I used one day last year ! " " Seventy dozen ! " the pilgrim - chorus ejacu- lated, their eyes growing the wider as their lips moistened. For behold, the eggs were now cooked to a turn ; the long-handled pan was being lifted with the effortless skill of long practice, the ome- lette was rolled out at just the right instant of consistency, and was being as quickly turned into its great flat dish. There was a scurrying and scampering up the wide steps to the dining room, and a hasty settling into the, long rows of chairs. Presently madame herself would appear, bearing the huge dish. And the omelette — the omelette, unlike the pilgrims, would be found to be always the same — melting, juicy, golden, luscious, and above all Jiot ! The noon-day table d'hote was always a sight to see. Many of the pilgrim-tourists came up to the Mont merely to pass the day, or to stop the night ; the midday meal was therefore certain to be the liveliest of all the repasts. The cloth was spread in a high, white, sunlit room. It was a trifle bare, this room, in spite of the walls being covered with pictures, the win- dows with pretty di-aperies, and the spotless linen 362 THREE NORMANDY INNS. that covered the long- table. But all temples, however richly adorned, have a more or less un- furnished aspect ; and this room served not only as the dining-table, but also as a foreshadowing of the apotheosis of Madame Poulard. Here were grouped together all the trophies and tributes of a grateful world; there were portraits of her charming brunette face signed by famous admir- ers ; there were sonnets to her culinary skill and her charms as hostess, framed ; these alternated with gifts of horned beasts that had been slain in her honor, and of stuffed birds who, in life, had beguiled the long winters for her with their songs. About the wide table, the snow of the linen re- flected always the same picture ; there were rows of little palms in flower-pots, interspersed with fruit dishes, with the butter pats, the almonds, and raisins, in their flat plates. The rows of faces above the cloth were more varied. The four corners of the earth were some- times to be seen gathered together about the breakfast-table. Frenchmen of the Midi, with the skin of Spaniards and the buzz of Tartarin's ze ze in their speech ; priests, lean and fat ; Germans who came to see a French stronghold as defence- less as a woman's palm ; the Italian, a rarer type, whose shoes, sufficiently pointed to prick, and whose choice for decollete collars betrayed his na- tionality before his lisping French accent could place him indisputably be3^ond the Alps ; herds of English — of all types — from the aristocrat, whose open-air life had colored his face with the hues of a butcher, to the pale, ascetic clerk, off on a two THREE NORMANDY INNS. 363 weeks' holiday, whose bendinc? at his desk had g-iveu him the stoop of a scholar ; with all these were mixed hordes of French provincials, chiefly of the bourgeois type, who singly, or in family parties, or in the nuptial train of sons or daugh- ters, came up to the shrine of St. Michel. To listen to the chatter of these tourists was to learn the last word of the world's news. As in the days before men spoke to each other across conti- nents, and the medium of cold type had made the event of to-day the history of to-morrow, so these pilgrims talked through the one medium that alone can give a fact the real essence of freshness — the ever young, the perdurably charming hu- man voice. It was as good as sitting out a play to watch the ever-recurring characteristics, which made certain national traits as marked as the noses on the faces of the tourists. The question, for example, on which side the Channel a pilgrim was born, was settled five seconds after he was seated at table. The way in which the butter was passed was one test ; the manner of the eating of the famous omelette was another. If the tourist were a Frenchman, the neat glass butter-dish was turned into a visiting-card — a letter of introduc- tion, a pontoon-bridge, in a word, hastily impro- vised to throw across the stream of conversation. " Madame " (this to the lady at the tourist's left), mepermet-elle de lui qffvir le beurre ? " Whereat ma- dame bowed, smiled, accepted the golden balls as if it Avere a bouquet, returning the gift, a few sec- onds later, by the proffer of the gravy dish. Be- tween the little ceremony of the two bows and the 364: THREE NORMANDY INNS. smiling- mercis,a, tentative outbreak of speech en- sued, wliicli at the end of a half-hour, had spread from bourgeois to countess, from cure to Parisian houlevardier, till the entire side of the table was in a buzz of talk. These genial iDeople of a genial land finding themselves all in search of the same adventure, on top of a hill, away from the petty world of conventionality, remembered that speech was given to man to communicate with his fel- lows. And though neighbors for a brief hour, how charming such an hour can be made when into it are crowded the effervescence of personal experience, the witty exchange of comment and observation, and the agreeable conflict of thought and opinion ! On the opposite side of the table, what a con- trast ! There the English were seated. There was the silence of the grave. All the rigid fig- ures sat as upright as posts. In front of these severe countenances, the butter-plates remained as fixtures; the passing of them to a neighbor would be a frightful breach of good form — be- sides being dangerous. Such practices, in public places, had been known to lead to things — to un- speakable things— to knowing the wrong people, to walks afterward with cads one couldn't shake off, even to marriages with the impossible ! There- fore it was that the butter remained a fixture. Even between those who formed the same tourist- party, there was rarely such an act of self-forget- fulness committed as an indulgence in talk — in public. The eye is the only active organ the Englishman carries abroad with him ; his talking THREE NORMANDY INNS. 365 is done by staring. "What fierce scowls, what dark looks of disapproval, contempt, and dislike were levelled at the chattering' Frenchmen opposite. Across the table, the national hate i)erpetuated itself. It appears to be a test of patriotism, this hatred between Frenchmen and Englishmen. That strip of linen might easily have been the Channel itself ; it could scarcely more eflfectually have separated the two nations. A whole comedy of bitterness, a drama of rivalry, and a five-act tragedy of scorn were daily played between the Briton who sat facing the south, and the French- man who faced north. Both, as they eyed their neighbor over the foam of their napkins, had the Island in their eye ! — the Englishman to flaunt its might and glory in the teeth of the hated Gaul, and the Frenchman to return his contemi^t for a nation of moist barbarians. Meanwhile, the omelette was going its rounds. It was being passed at that moment to Monsieur le Cure. He had been watching its progress with glistening eye and moistening lips. Madame Poulard, as she slipped the melting morsel be- neath his elbow, had suddenly assumed the role of the penitent. Her tone was a reminder of the confessional, as of one who passed her master- piece apologetically. She, forsooth, a sinner, to have the honor of ministering to the carnal needs of a son of the Church ! The son of the Church took two heaping spoon- fuls. His eye gave her, with his smile, the l)ene- diction of his gratitude, even before he had tasted of the luscious compound. 360 THREE NORMANDY INNS. "Ah, chere madame ! il n'y a que vous — it is only you who can make the ideal omelette ! I have tried, but Suzette has no art in her fingers ; your receipt doesn't work away from the Mont ! " And the good man sighed as he chuckled forth his praises. He had come up to the hill in company with the two excellent ladies beside him, of his flock, to make a little visit to his brethren yonder, to the priests who were still here, wrecks of the once former flourishing monastery. He had come to see them, and also to gaze on La Merveille. It was a good five years since he had looked upon its dungeons and its lace-work. But after all, in his secret soul of souls, he had longed to eat of the omelette. Dieu ! how often during those slow, quiet years in the little hamlet yonder on the plain, had its sweetness and lightness mocked his tongue with illusive tasting ! Little wonder, therefore, that the good cure's jjraises were sweet in madame's ear, for they had the ring of truth — and of envy ! And madame herself was only mor- tal, for what woman lives but feels herself up- lifted by the sense of having found favor in the eyes of her priest 1 The omelette next came to a halt between the two ladies of the cure's flock. These were two bourgeoises with the deprecating, mistrustful air peculiar to commonplace the world over. The walk up the steep stairs was still quickening their breath — their compressed bosoms were straining the hooks of their holiday Avoollen bodices — cut when they were of slenderer build. Their bon- THREE NORMANDY INNS. 367 nets proclaimed the antique fashions of a past decade ; but the edge of their tongues had the keenness that comes with daily practice — than which none has been found surer than adoration of ones pastor, and the invigorating gossip of small towns. These ladies eyed the omelette with a chilled glance. Naturally, they could not see as much to admire in Madame Poulard or in her dish as did their cure. There was nothing so wonderful after all in the turning of eggs over a hot fire. The omelette ! — after all, an omelette is an omelette ! Some are better — some are worse ; one has one's luck in cooking as in anything else. They had come up to the Mont with their good cure to see its wonders and for a day's outing ; admiration of other women had not been anticipated as a part of the programme. Tiens — who was he talking to now % To that tall blonde — a foreigner, a young girl — liens — who knows ? — possibh^ an American — those Americans are terrible, they say — bold, im- modest, irreverent. And the two ladies' necks were screwed about their over-tight collars, to give Charm the verdict of their disapproval. "Monsieur le Cure, the}^ are jDassing you the fish ! " cried the stouter, more aggressive parish- ioner, who boasted a truculent mustache. " Monsieur le Cure, the roast is at your elbow ! " interpolated the second, with the more timid voice of a second in action ; this protector of the good cure had no mustache, but her face was mercifully protected by nature from a too-disturb- ing combination of attractions, by being plenti- 368 THREE NORMANDY INNS. fully punctuated with moles from which sprouted little tufts of hair. The rain of these ladies' inter- ruption was incessant ; but the cure was a man of firm mind ; their efforts to recapture his attention were futile. For the music of Charm's foreign voice was in his ear. Worship of the cloth is not a national, it is a more or less universal cult, I take it. It is in the blood of certain women. Opposite the two fussy, jealous bourgeoises, were others as importun- , ate and aggressive. They were of fair, lean, lank English build, with the shifting eyes and the per- sistent courage which come to certain maidens in whose lives there is but one fixed and certain fact — that of having missed the matrimonial market. The shrine of their devotions, and the present citadel of their attack, was seated between them — he also being lean, pale, high-arched of brow, high anglican by choice, and noticeably weak of chin, in whose sable garments there was framed the classical clerical tie. To this curate Madame was now passing her dish. She still wore her fine sweet smile, but there was always a discriminating reserve in its edge when she touched the English elbow. The curate took his spoonful with the indifference of a man who had never known the religion of good eating. He put up his one eye-glass : it swept Madame's bending face, its smile, and the yellow glory floating beneath both. "Ah — h — ya — as— an omelette ! " The glass was dropped ; he took a meagre spoonful which he cut, presently, with his knife. He turned then to his neighbors — to both THREE NORMANDY INNS. 369 his neig-libors ! Tliey had been talking- of the parish church on the hill. "Ah-h-h, ya-as — lovely porch — isn't it ?" " Oh, lovely — lovely ! " chornssed the two maid- ens, with assenting- fervor. " Were you there this morning- % " and they lifted eyes swimming- with the rapture of their admiration. " Ya-as." " Only fancy — our missing- you ! "We were hoth there ! " " De-ar me ! Really, were you ? " " Could you go this afternoon"? I do want so to hear 3"our criticism of my drawing- — I'm working on the arch now." " So sorry — can't — possibly. I promised what's his name to go over to Tombelaine, don't you know ! " " Oh-li ! We do so want to go to Tombelaine ! " "Ah-h — do you, really ? One oug-lit to start a little before the tide drops — they tell me ! " and the clerical eye, through its correctlj^ adjusted g-lass, looked into those four pleading- eyes with no hint of softening. The dish that was the mas- terpiece of the house, meanwhile, had been de- spatched as if it were so much leather. The omelette fared no better with the brides, as a rule, than with the English curates. Such a variety of brides as came up to the Mont ! You could have your choice, at the midday meal, of almost any nationality, age, or color. The at- tempt among these bridal couples to maintain the distant air of a finished indifference only made their secret the more open. The British phlegm. 370 THREE NORMANDY INNS. on such a journey, did not always serve as a con- venient mask ; the flattering", timid glance, the rip- ple of the tender whispers, and the furtive touch- ing- of fingers beneath the table, made even these English couples a part of the great human marry- ing family ; their superiority to their fellows would return, doubtless, when the honey had dried out of their moon. The best of our adventures into this tender country were with the French bridal tour- ists ; they were certain to be delightfully human. As we had had occasion to remark before, they were off, like ourselves, on a little voyage of dis- covery ; they had come to make acquaintance with the being to whom they were mated for life. Various degrees of progress could be read in the air and manner of the hearty young bourgeoises and their paler or even ruddier partners, as they crunched their bread or sipped their thin wine. Some had only entered as yet upon the path of inquiry ; others had already passed the mile-stone of criticism ; and still others had left the earth and were floating in full azure of intoxication. Of the many wedding parties that sat down to breakfast, we soon made the commonplace discov- ery that the more plebeian the company, the more certain-orbed appeared to be the promise of hap- piness. Some of the peasant weddings were noisy, boisterous performances; but how gay were the brides, and how bloated with joy the hardy, knotty-handied grooms ! These peasant wedding guests all bore a striking family likeness ; they might easily all have been brothers and sisters, THREE NORMANDY INNS. 371 whether they had come from the fields near Pon- torson, or Cancale, or Dol, or St. Malo. The older the women, the prettier and the more gossamer were the caps ; but the younger maidens were al- ways delightful to look upon, such was the ripe vigor of their frames, and the liquid softness of eyes that, like animals, were used to wide sunlit fields and to great skies full of light. The bride, in her brand-new stuff gown, with a bonnet that recalled the bridal wreath onl}' just laid aside, was also certain to be of a general universal type — with the broad hips, wide waist, muscular limbs, and the melting sweetness of lips and eyes, that only abundant health and a rich animalism of nat- ure bring to maidenhood. Madame Poulard's air with this, her world, was as full of tact as with the tourists. Manj' of the older women would give her the Norman kiss, sol- emnly, as if the salute were a part of the ceremony attendant on the eating of a wedding breakfast at Mont St. Michel. There would be a three times' clapping of the wrinkled or the ruddy peasant cheeks against the sides of Madame Poulard's daintier, more delicately modelled face. Then all would take their seats noisily at table. It was Madame Poulard who then would bring us news of the party ; at the end of a fortnight, Charm and I felt ourselves to be in possession of the hidden and secret reasons for all the marrying that had been done along the coast, that 3-ear. " Tlens, ce n'est pas gai, la noce ! I must learn the reason ! " Madame would then flutter over the bridal break- fasters as a delicate-plumaged bird hovers over a 372 THREE NORMANDY INN 8. mass of stuff out of which it hopes to make a re spectable meal. She presently would return to murmur in a whisper, " it is a 7nariage de raison. They, the bride and g-room, love elsewhere, but they are marrj^ing- to make a good partnership ; they are both hair-dressers at Caen. They have bought a new and fine shop with their earnings." Or it would be, " Look, madame. at that jolie per- sonne ; see how sad she looks. She is in love with her cousin who sits opposite, but the groom is the old one. He has a large farm and a hundred cows." To look on such a trio would only be to make the acquaintance anew of Sidonie and Eisler and of Froment Jeune. Such brides always had the wan- dering gaze of those in search of fresh horizons, or of those looking- already for the chance of es- cape. For such "unhappies," ces malheureuses, Ma- dame's manner had an added softness and tender- ness ; she passed the frosted bridal cake as if it were a propitiatory offering to the God of Hymen. However melancholy the bride, the cake and Ma- dame's caressing smiles wroug-ht ever the same spell; for an instant, at least, the newly-made wife was in love with matrimony and with the cake, accepting- the latter with the pleased sur- prise of one who realizes that, at least, on one's wedding day, one is a person of imj^ortance ; that even so far as Mont St. Michel the news of their marriage had turned the ovens into a baking- of wedding-cakes. This was destined to be the first among the deceptions that g-reeted such brides ; for there were hundreds of such cakes, alas ! kept con- stantly on hand. They were the same — a glory of THREE NORMANDY INNS. 373 sugar-moulding"s and devices covering- a mountain of richness — tliat were sent up }■ early at Christmas time to certain mansard studios in the Latin quar- ter, where the artist recipients, like the brides, eat of the cake as did Adam when partaking of the apple, believing all the woman told them ! There were other visitors who came up to the Mont, not as welcome as were these tourist par- ties. One morning, as we looked toward Pontorson, a small black cloud a^Dpeared to be advancing across the bay. The day was windy ; the sky was crowded with huge white mountains — round, luminous clouds that moved in stately sweeps. And the sea was the color one loves to see in an earnest woman's ej^e, the dark-blue sapphire that turns to blue-gray. This was a setting that made that particular cloud, making such slow progress across from the shore, all the more conspicuous. Gradually, as the black mass neared the dike, it began to break and separate ; and we saw plainly enough that the scattering particles were human beings. It was, in point of fact, a band of pilgrims ; a peasant pilgrimage was coming up to the Mont. In wagons, in market carts, in char-d-bancs, in don- key-carts, on the backs of monster Percherons — the pilgrimage moved in slow processional dig- nity across the dike. Some of the younger black ^owns and blue blouses attempted to walk across over the sands ; we could see the girls sitting down on the edge of the shore, to take off their shoes and stockings and to tuck up their thick 374 THREE NORMANDY INNS. skirts. When they finally started they were like unto so many huge cheeses hoisted on stilts. The bare legs plunged boldly forward, keeping- ahead of the slower-moving peasant-lads ; the girls' bravery served them till they reached the fringe )f the incoming tide ; not until their knees went inder water did they forego their vencure. A higher wave came in, deluging the ones farthest out ; and then ensued a scampering toward the dike and a climbing up of the stone embank- ment. The old route across the sands, that had been the only one known to kings and barons, was not good enough for a modern Norman peas- ant. The religion of personal comfort has spread even as far as the fields. At the entrance gate a tremendous hubbub and noise announced the arrival of the pilgrimage. Wagons, carts, horses, and peasants were crowded tog3ther as only such a throng is mixed in pil- grimages, wars, and fairs. Women were taking down hoods, unharnessing the horses, fitting sla ^a into outsides of wagons, rolling up blankets, un- packing from the char-a-bancs cooking utensils, chiLlren, grain-bags, long columns of bread, and hard-boiled eggs. For the women, darting hither and thither iu their blue petticoats, their pink and red kerchiefs, and the stiff white Norman caps, were doing all the work. The men appeared to be decorative adjuncts, plying the Norman's gift of tongue across wagon-wheels and over the back of their vigorous wives and daughters. For them the battle of the day was over : the hour of relax- ation had come. The bargains they had made THREE NORM ANDY INNS. 375 along the route were now to be rehearsed, sea- soned with a joke. " Allons, toi, on nc fait pas de la monnaie blanche comme pa / " " Je fai qffert Jiuit souf<, tu sais, la2nn ! " " Farceui-, va-t'en " " Come, are j'oii never going- to have done fool- ing ? " cried a tan-colored, wide-hii^ped peasant to her husband, who was lounging against the wagon pole, sporting a sprig of gentian pinned to his blouse. He was fat and handsome ; and his eye proclaimed, as he was making it do heavy work at long range at a cluster of girls descending from an antique gig, that the knowledge of the same was known unto him. " That's right, growl ahead, thou, fes beaux jours sont passes, but for me Vamour, I'amour — que c'est gai, que c'est frais .'" he half sung, half shouted. The moving mass of color, the Breton caps, and the Xorman faces, the gold crosses that fell from dented bead necklaces, the worn hooped earrings, the clean bodices and homespun skirts, streamed out past our windows as we looked down upon them. How pretty were some of the faces, of the younger women particularly ! and with what gay spirits they were beginning their day ! It had begun the night before, almost; many of the carts had been driven in from the forests beyond Avranches : some of the Brittany groups had start- ed the day before. But what can quench the foun- tain of French vivacity ? To see one's world, surel}-, there is nothing in that to tire one; it only excites and exhilarates ; and so a fair or market day, and 376 THREE NORMANDY INNS. above all a pilgrimag-e, are better than balls, since they come more regularly ; they are the peasant's opera, his Piccadilly and Broadway, club, drawing- room, Exchange, and parade, all in one. A half -hour after a landing of the pilgrims at the outer gates of the fortifications, the hill was swarming with them. The single street of the town was choked with the black gowns and the cobalt-blue blouses. Before these latter took a turn at their devotions they did homage to Bac- chus. Crowds of peasants were to be seen seated about the long, narrow inn-tables, lifting huge pewter tankards to bristling beards. Some of these taverns were the same that had fed and sheltered bands of pilgrims that are now mere handfuls of dust in country churchyards. Those sixteenth cen- tury pilgrims, how many of them, had found this same arched doorway of La Licorne as cool as the shade of great trees after the long hot climb up to the hill ! What a pleasant face has the tim- bered fa§ade of the Tete d'Or, and the Mouton Blanc, been to the weary-limbed ! and how sweet to the dead lips has been the first taste of the acid cider ! Other aspects of the hill, on this day of the pilgrimage, made those older dead-and-gone bands of pilgrims astonishingly real. On the tops of bastions, in the clefts of the rocks, beneath the glorious walls of La Merveille, or perilously lodged on the crumbling cornice of a tourelle, numerous rude altars had been hastily erected. The crude blues and scarlets of banners were fluttering, like so many pennants, in the light breeze. Beneath THREE NORMANDY INNS. 377 the improyised altar-roofs — strips of gay cloth stretched across poles stuck into the ground — were g-roiips uot often seen in these less fervent centu- ries. High up, mounted on the natural i)ulpit formed of a bit of rock, with the rude altar before him, with its bit of scarlet cloth covered with cheap lace, stood or knelt the priest. Against the wide blue of the open heaven his figure took on an im- posing splendor of mien and an unmodern impres- siveness of action. Beneath him knelt, with bowed heads, the groups of the peasant-pilgrims; the women, with murmuring lips and clasped hands, their strong, deeph'-seamed faces outlined, with the precision of a Francesco painting, against the gra}^ backgi'ound of a giant mass of wall, or the amazing breadth of a vast sea-view ; children, squat and chubbj^ with bulging cheeks starting from the close-fitting French bonnet ; and the peas- ant-farmers, mostly of the older varieties, whose stiffened or rheumatic knees and knotty hands made their kneeling real acts of devotional zeal. There were a dozen such altars and groups scat- tered over the perpendicular slant of the hill. The singing of the choir-boys, rising like skylark notes into the clear space of heaven, would be floating from one rocky-nested chapel, while be- low, in the one beneath which we, for a moment, were resting, there would be the gi'oaning murmur of the peasant groups in prayer. All day little processions were going up and down the steep stone steps that lead from forti- fied rock to parish church, and from the towTi to the abbatial gateway. The banners and the choir- 378 THREE NORMANDY INNS. bo3's, the priests in their embroideries and lace, the peasants in cap and blouse, were incessantly mounting- and descending, standing on rock edges, caught for an instant between a medley of perpen- dicular roofs, of giant gateways, and a long per- spective of fortified walls, only to be lost in the curve of a bastion, or a flying buttress, that, in their turn, would be found melting into a distant sea-view. All the hours of a pilgrimage, we discovered, were not given to prayer ; nor yet is an incessant bow- ing at the shrine of St. Michel the sole other di- version in a true pilgrim's round of pious devo- tions. Later on in this eventful day, we stumbled on a somewhat startling variation to the peniten- tial order of the performances. In a side alley, beneath a friendly overhanging rock and two pro- tecting roof-eaves, an acrobat was making her pro- fessional toilet. When she emerged to lay a worn strip of carpet on the rough cobbles of the street, she presented a pathetic figure in the gold of the afternoon sun. She was old and wrinkled ; the rouge would no longer stick to the sunken cheeks ; the wrinkles were become clefts; the shrunken but still muscular legs were clad in a pair of tights, a very caricature of the silken webs that must once have encased the poor old creature's limbs, for these were knitted of the coarse thread the com- monest peasant uses for the rough field stocking. Over these obviously home-made coverings was a single skirt of azure tarlatan, plentifully be- sprinkled with golden stars. The gossamer skirt and its spangles turned, for their debut, a somer- THREE NORMANDY INNS. 379 sault in the air, and the knitted tig-hts took strang-e leaps from the bars of a rude trapeze. The g-roups of peasants were soon thicker about this spectacle than they had gathered about the improvised al- tars. All the men who had passed the day in the taverns came out at the sound of the hoarse cracked voice of the aged acrobat. As she hurled her poor old twisted shape from swinging" bar to pole, she cried aloud, ''Ah, messieitrs, essayez ga seulement!" The men's hands, when she had landed on her feet after an uncommonly venturous whirl of the blue skirts in mid-air, came out of their deep pock- ets ; but they seasoned their applause with coarse jokes which they flung-, with a cruel relish, into the pitifully-ag-ed face. A cracked accordion and a jingling tambourine were played by two hardened- looking- ruflians, seated on their heels beneath a window — a discordant music that could not drown the noise of the jDeasants' derisive laughter. But the latter's pennies rattled a louder jingle into the ancient acrobat's tin cup than it had into the priest's g-reen-netted contribution-box. " No, madame, as for us, we do not care for pil- g-rimages," was Madame Poulard's verdict on such survivals of past religious enthusiasms. And she seasoned her comments with an enlightening- shrug-. "We see too w^ell how they end. The men go home dead drunk, the women are drop- ping with fatigue, et les enfants meme se gi'isent de cidre ! No ; pilgrimages are bad for everyone. The priests should not allow them." This was at the end of the day, after the black and blue swarm had passed, a wearj^ uncertain- S80 THREE NORMANDY INNS. tooted throng-, down the long- street, to take its departure along- the dike. At the very end of the straggling procession came the three acrobats ; they had begged, or bought, a drive across the dike from some of the pilgrims. The lady of the knitted tights, in her conventional skirts and wom- anly fichu, was scarcely distinguishable from the peasant women who eyed her askance ; though de- cently garbed now, they looked at her as if she were some plague or vice Avalking in their midst. The verdict of Madame Poulard seemed to be the verdict of all Mont St. Michel. The whole town was abroad that evening-, on its doorsteps and in its garden-beds, repairing the ravages com- mitted by the band of the pilgrims. Never had the town, as a town, been so dirty ; never had the street presented so shocking a collection of abom- inations ; never had flowers and shrubs been so mercilessly robbed and plundered— these were the comments that flowed as freely as the water that was rained over the dusty cobbles, thick with re- fuse of luncheon and the shreds of torn skirts and of children's socks. At any hour of the day, of even an ordinary, un- eventful day, to take a walk in the town is to encounter a surprise at every turning-. AVould you call it a town — this one straggling- street that begins in a King's gateway and ends — ah, that is the point, just where does it end ? I, for one, was never once quite certain at just what precise point this one single Mont St. Michel street stopped— lost itself, in a word, and became something else. That was also true of so many other things on the THREE JSrORMANDY INNS. 381 hill ; all objects had such an astonishing- way of suddenly becoming something else. A house, for example, that you had passed on your upward walk, had a beguiling- air of sincerity. It had its cellar beneath the street front like any other properly built house ; it continued its growth up- ward, shoAving the commonplace features of a door, of so many windows — queerly spaced, and of an amazing variety of shapes, but still unmistakably windows. Then, assured of so much integrity of character, you looked to see the roof covering the house, and instead — like the eggs in a Chinese juggler's fingers, that are turned in a jiffy into a growing plant — behold the roof miraculously transformed into a garden, or lost in a rampart, or, with quite shameless effrontery, playing de- serter, and serving as the basement of another and still fairer dwelling. That was a sample of the way all things played you the trick of suri3rise on this hill. Stairwaj^s began on the cobbles of the streets, only to lose themselves in a side wall : a turn on the ramparts would land you straight into the privacy of a St. Michelese interior, with an en- tire household, perchance, at the mercy of your eye, taken at the mean disadvantage of morning dishabille. As for doors that flew open where you looked to find a bastion ; or a school -house that flung all the Michelese voyous over the tops of the ramparts at play -time ; or of fishwives that sprung, as full-armed in their kit as Minerva from her sire's brows, from the very forehead of fortified places ; or of beds and settees and wardrobes (surely no Michelese has ever been able, successfully, to 382 THREE NORMANDY INNS. maintain in secret the ghost of a family skele- ton !) into which you were innocently precipitated on your way to discover the minutest of all ceme- teries — these were all commonplace occurrences once your foot was set on this Hill of Surprises. There are two roads that lead one to the noble mass of building-s crowning the hill. One may choose the narrow street with its moss-grown steps, its curves, and turns ; or one may have the broader path along- the ramparts, with its glori- ous outlook over land and sea. Whichever ap- proach one chooses, one passes at last beneath the g-reat doors of the Barbican. Three times did the vision of St. Michel appear to Saint Aubert, in his dream, commanding the latter to erect a church on the heights of Mont St. Michel to his honor. How many a time must the modern pilgrim traverse the stupendous mass that has grown ovit of that command before he is quite certain that the splendor of Mont St. Michel is real, and not a part of a dream! Whether one enters through the dark magnificence of the great portals of the Chatelet ; whether one mounts the fortified stairway, passing into the Salle des Gardes, passing onward from dungeon to fortified bridge,to gain the abbatial residence ; whether one leaves the vaulted splendor of oratories for aerial passage-ways, only to emerge beneath the majestic roof of the Cathedral — that marvel of the early Nor- man, ending in the Gothic choir of the fifteenth century ; or, as one penetrates into the gloom of the mighty dungeons where heroes and the broth- ers of kings, and saints and scientists have died THREE NORMANDY INNS. 383 their long death— as one gropes through the black night of the Crypt, where a faint, mysterious glint of light falls aslant the mystical face of the Black Virgin; as one climbs to the light beneath the ogive arches of the Aumonerie, through the wide- lit aisles of the Salle des Chevaliers, past the slender Gothic columns of the Eefectory, up at last to the crowning glory of all the glories of La Merveille, to the exquisitely beautiful colonnades of the open Cloister — the impressions and emo- tions excited by these ecclesiastical and mili- tar\" masterpieces are ever the same, however many times one may pass them in review. A charm, indefinable, but replete with subtle attrac- tions, lurks in every one of these dungeons. The great halls have a power to make one retraverse their space, I have yet to find under other vaulted chambers. The grass that is set, like a green jewel, in the arabesques of the Cloister, is a bit of greensward the feet press with a different tread to that which skips lightly over other strips of turf. And the world, that one looks out upon through prison bars, that is so gloriously arched in the arm of a flying buttress, or that lies prone at your feet from the dizzy heights of the rock clefts, is not the world in which you, daily, do your petty stretch of toil, in which you laugh and ache, sorrow, sigh, and go down to your grave in. The secret of this deep attraction may lie in the fact of one's being in a world that is built on a height. Much, doubtless, of the charm lies, also, in the reminders of all the human life that, since the early dawn of history, has peopled this 384 THREE NORMANDT INNS. hill. One lias the sense of living at tremendously high mental pressure ; of impressions, emotions, sensations crowding upon the mind ; of one's whole meagre outfit of memory, of poetic equip- ment, and of imaginative furnishing, being un- equal to the demand made by even the most hur- ried tour of the great buildings, or the most flitting review of the noble massing of the clouds and the hilly seas. The very emptiness and desolation of all the buildings on the hill help to accentuate their splendor. The stage is magnificently set ; the curtain, even, is lifted. One waits for the coming on of kingly shapes, for the pomp of trumpets, for the pattering of a mighty host. But,, behold, all is still. And one sits and sees only a shadowy company pass and repass across that glorious mise-en-scene. For, in a certain sense, I know no other mediaeval mass of buildings as peopled as are these. The dead shapes seem to fill the vast halls. The Salle des Chevaliers is crowded, daily, with a brilliant gathering of knightiS, who sweep the trains of their white damask mantles, edged with ermine, over the dulled marble of the floor ; two by two they enter the hall ; the golden shells on their mantles make the eyes blink, as the groups gather about the great chimneys, or wander through the col- umn-broken space. Behind this dazzling cortege, up the steep steps of the narrow street, swarm other groups — the mediaeval pilgrim host that rushes into the cathedral aisles, and that climbs the ramparts to watch the stately procession as it THREE NORMANDY INNS. 385 makes its way toward the church portals. There are still other fig-ures that fill every empty niche and deserted watch-tower. Throug"h the lancet windows of the abbatial g-ateways the yeomanry of the vassal villages are peering ; it is the weary time of the Hundred Years' AYar, and all France is watching, through sentry windows, for the ap- proach of her di'ead enemy. On the shifting sands below, as on brass, how indelibly fixed are the names of the hundred and twenty-nine knights whose courage drove, step by step, over that treach- erous surface, the English invaders back to their island strongholds. Will you have a less stormy and belligerent company to j)eople the hill ? In the quieter days of the fourteenth century, on any bright afternoon, you could have sat beside some friendly artist-monk, and w^atched him color and embellish those wondrous missals that made the manuscripts of the Brothers famous throughout France. Earlier yet, in those naive centuries, Robert de Torigny, that " bouclie des Papes," would doubtless have discoursed to you on any subject dear to this "counsellor of kings " — on books, or architecture, or the science of fortifi- cations, or on the theology of Lanfranc ; from the helmeted locks of Eollon to the veiled tresses of the lovely Tiphaine Eaguenel, Duguesclin's wdfe ; from the ghastly rat -eaten body of the Dutch journalist, who offended that tyrant King, Louis XIY., to the Eevolutionary heroes, as pitilessly doomed to an odious death under the gentle Louis Philippe — there is no shape or figure in French history which cannot be summoned at will to refill 3b 6 THREE NORMANDY iNNb. either a dungeon or a palace chamber at Mont St Michel. Even in these, our modern days, one finds sti-ang-e relics of past fashions in thought and opinion. The various political, religious, and ethical forms of belief to be met with in a fort- night's sojourn on the hill, give one a sense of having passed in review a very complete gallery of ancient and modern portraits of men's minds. In time one learns to traverse even a dozen or more centuries with ease. To be in the dawn of the eleventh century in the morning ; at high noon to be in the flood-tide of the fifteenth ; and, as the sun dipped, to hear the last word of our own dying century — such were the flights across the abysmal depths of time Charm and I took again and again. One of our chosen haunts was in a certain watch- tower. From its tox) wall, the loveliest prospect of Mont St. Michel was to be enjoyed. Day after day and sunset after sunset, we sat out the hours there. Again and again the world, as it passed, came and took its seat beside us. Pilgrims of the devout and ardent type would stop, perchance, would proffer a preliminary greeting, would next take their seat along the parajjet, and, quite unconsciously, would end by sitting for their portrait. One such sitter, I remember, was clad in carmine crepe shawl ; she was bonneted in the shape of a long-ago decade. She had climbed the hill in the morning before dawn, she said ; she had knelt in prayer as the sun rose. For hers was a pilgrimage made in fulfilment of a vow. St. Michel had granted her wish, and she in roturn had brought her prayers to his shrine. THREE NORMANDY INNS. 387 " All, mesdames ! how g-oocl is God ! How greatly He rewards a little self-sacrifice. Figure to yourselves the Mont in the early mists, with the sun rising out of the sea and the hills. I was on my knees, up there. I had eaten nothing since yesterday at noon. I was full of the Holy Ghost. When the sun broke at last, it was God Himself in all His glory come down to earth ! The whole earth seemed to be listening — lyrttait Voreille — and with the great stillness, and the sea, and the light breaking everywhere, it was as if I were be- ing taken straight up into Paradise. Saint Michel himself must have been supporting me." The carmine crepe shawl covered a poet, you see, as well as a devotee. Up yonder, in the little shops and stalls tucked away within the walls of the Barbican, a lively traflic, for many a century now, has been going on in relics and ^)?o??i5.s de jyelerinage. Some of these mediaeval impressions have been unearthed in strange localities, in the bed of the Seine, as far away as Paris. Eude and archaic are many of these early essays in the sculptor's art. But they preserve for us, in quaint intensity, the fervor of adoration which possessed that earlier, more de- vout time and jjeriod. On the mind of this nine- teenth century pilgrim, the same lovely old forms of belief and superstition Avere imprinted as are still to be seen in some of those winged figures of St. Michel, with feet securely set on the back of the terrible dragon, staring, with triumphant gaze, through stony or leaden eyes. On the evening of the pilgrimage our friend. 388 THREE NORMANDY 1NN8. tlie Parisian, joined us on our liig-h percli. The Mont seemed strangely quiet after the noise and confusion the peasants had brought in their train. The Parisian, like ourselves, had been glad to es- cape into the upper heights of the wide air, after the bustle and hurry of the day at our inn. " You permit me, mesdames ? " He had lighted his after-dinner cigar ; he went on puffing, having gained our consent. He curled a leg comfortably about the railings of a low bridge connecting a house that sprang out of a rock, with the rampart. Below, there was a clean drop of a few hundred feet, more or less. In spite of the glories of a spectacular sunset, yielding ceaseless changes and transformations of cloud and sea tones, the words of Madame Poulard alone had power to possess our companion. She had uttered her protest against the pilgrimage, as she had swept the Parisian's pousse-cafe from his elbow. He took up the conversation where it had been dropped. "It is amusing to hear Madame Poulard talk of the priests stopping the pilgrimages ! The priests ? Why, that's all they have left them to live upon now. These peasants' are the only pockets in which they can fumble nowadays." '■' All the same, one can't help being grateful to those peasants," retorted Charm. " They are the only creatures who have made these things seem to have any meaning. How dead it all seems ! The abbey, the cloisters, the old prisons, the fortifications — it is like wandering through a splendid tomb ! " " Yes, as the cure said yesterday, ' Vdme n'y est THREE NORM ANDY INNS. 389 plus' — siuce the priests have been dislodged, it is the house of the dead." " The priests " — the Parisian snorted at the very sound of the word — " they have only themselves to blame. They would have been here still, if they had not so abused their power." " How did they abuse it ? " Charm asked. " In every possible way. I am, myself, not of the country. But my brother was stationed here for some years, when the Mont was garrisoned. The priests were in full possession then, and they conducted a lively commerce, mademoiselle. The Mont was turned into a show — to see it or any part of it, everyone had to pay toll. On the great fete-days, when St. Michel wore his crown, the gold ran like water into the monks' treasury. It was still then a fashionable religious fad to have a mass said for one's dead, out here among the clouds and the sea. Y^ell, try to imagine fifty masses all dumped on the altar together; that is, one mass would be scrambled through, no names would be mentioned, no one save le ban Dieu him- self knew for whom it was being said ; but fifty or more believed they had bought it, since they had paid for it. And the priests laughed in their sleeves, and then sat down, comfortably, to count the gold. Ah, mesdames, those were, literally, the golden days of the priesthood ! What with the pilgrimages, and the sale of relics, and les benefices — together with the charges for seeing the won- ders of the Mont — what a trade they did ! It is only the Jews, who, in their turn, now own us, up in Paris, who can equal the priests as commercial 390 THREE NORMANDY INNS. g-eniuses ! " And our pessimistic Parisian, during the next half-hour, gave us a j^rophetic picture of the approaching ruin of France, brought about by the genius for plunder and organization that is given to the son? of Moses. Following tho Parisian, a figure, bent and twisted, Oldened a door in a side-wall, and took his seat beside us. One became used, in time, to these sudden appearances ; to vanish down a chimney, or to emerge from the womb of a rock, or to come up from the bowels of what earth there was to be found — all such exits and entrances be- came as commonplace as all the other extraordi- nary phases of one's life on the hill. This particu- lar shape had emerged from a hut, carved, literally, out of the side of the rock ; but, for a hut, it was amazingl}' snug — as we could see for ourselves ; for the venerable shape hospitably opened the low wooden door, that we might see how much of a home could be made out of the side of a rock. Onh^, when one had been used to a guard-room, and to great and little dungeons, and to a rattling of keys along dark corridors, a hut, and the blaze of the noon sun, were trj^ing things to endure, as the shape, with a shrug, gave us to understand. " You see, mesdames, I was jailor h«re, years ago, when all La Merveille was a prison. Ah ! those were great days for the Mont ! There were soldiers and officers who came up to look at the soldiers, and the soldiers — it was their business to look after the iDrisoners. The Emperor himself came here once — I saw him. "What a sight ! — Dieu ! all the monks and priests and nuns, and the arch- THREE NORMANDY INNS. 391 bishop himself were out. What banners and crosses and flag's! The cannon was like a great thunder — and the greve was red with soldiers. Ah, those were days! Dieu — why couldn't the republic have continued those glories — ces gloh'es ? A ujourd'hui nous ne sommes que des morts — instead of prisoners to handle — to watch and work, like so many good machines — there is only the dike yon- der to keep in repair ! AVliat changes — mon Dieu ! what changes ! " And the shape wrung his hands. It was, in truth, a touching spectacle of grief for a good old past. An old priest, with equally saddened vision, once came to take his seat, quite easily and naturally, beside us, on our favorite perch. He was one of the little band of priests who had remained faithful to the Mont after the govern- ment had dispersed his brothers — after the mon- astery had been broken up. He and his four or five companions had taken refuge in a small house, close by the cemetery ; it was they who conducted the services in the little parish church ; who had gathered the treasures still grouped to- gether in that little interior — the throne of St. Michel, with its blue draperies and the golden fleur-de-lis, the floating banners and the shields of the Knights of St. Michel, the relics, and won- drous bits of carving rescued from the splendors of the cathedral, " Ah, mesdames — que voidez-vous ? " was the old priest's broken chant ; he was bewailing the woes that had come to his order, to religion, to France. " What will you have ? The history of nations 392 TIIUEE NORMANDY INNS. repeats itself, as we all know. We, of our day, are fallen on evil times ; it is the reign of image- breakers — nothing is sacred, except money. France has worn herself out. She is like an old man, the hero of many battles, who cares only for his easy chair and his slippers. She does not care about the children who are throwing stones at the windows. She likes to snooze, in the sun, and count her money-bags. France is too old to care about religion, or the future — she is thinking how best to be comfortable — here in this world, when she has rheumatism and a cramp in the stomach ! " And the old priest wrapped his own soutane about his lean knees, suiting his gesture to his inward convictions. Was the priest's summary the last word of truth about modern France "? On the sands that lay below at our feet, we read a different answer. The skies were still brilliantly lighted. The actual twilight had not come yet, with its long, deep glow, a x)assion of color that had a longer life up here on the heights than when seen from a lower level. This twilight hour was always a pro- longed moment of transfiguration for the Mont. The very last evening of our stay, we chose this as the loveliest light in which to see the last of the hill. On that evening, I remember, the reds and saffrons in the sky were of an astonishing richness. The sea wall, the bastions, the faces of the great rocks, the yellow broom that sprang from the clefts therein, were dyed as in a carmine bath. In that mighty glow of color, all things took on something of their old, their stupendous THREE NORMANDY INNS. 393 splendor. The giant walls were paved with brightness. The town, climbing- the hill, assumed the proportions of a mighty citadel ; the forest tree-tops were prismatic, emerald balls Hung be- neath the illumined Merveille ; and the Cathedral was set in a daffodil frame ; its aerial escalier de dentelle, like Jacob's ladder, led one easily heaven- wai'd. The circling birds, in the lace-work of the spiral finials, sang their night songs, as the glow in the sky changed, softened, deepened. This was the world that was in the west. Toward the east, on the flat surface of the sands, this world cast a strange and wondrous shadow. Jagged rocks, a pyramidal city, a Gothic cathedral in mid-air — behold the rugged outlines of Mont St. Michel carving their giant features on the shifting, sensitive surface of the mirroring sands. In the little pools and the trickling rivers, the fishermen — from this height, Liliputians grap- pling with Liliputian meshes — were setting their nets for the night. Across the river-beds, peasant women and fishwives, with bared legs and baskets clasped to their bending backs, appeared and dis- appeared — shapes that emerged into the light only to vanish into the gulf of the night. In was in these pictures that we read our answer. Like Mont St. Michel, so has France carried into the heights of history her glory and her power. On every century, she, like this world in miniature, has also cast her shadow, dwai*fing some, illuminating others. And, as on those 394 THREE NORMANDY INNS. distant sands the toiling- shapes of the iBshermen are to be seen, early and late, in summer and winter, so can France p-int to her people, whose industry and amazing talent for toil have made her, and maintain her, great. Some of these things we have learned, since, in Normandy Inns, we have sat at meat with her peasants, and have grown to be friends with her fishwives. €ntbt'isvnl Bag£( J TOUR IN SOUTHERN ENGLAND By ANNA BOWMAN DODD Nezv edition. Illustrated with Sketches and Photographs by E. Eldon Deane, I2mo. Cloth, extra. Price, $1.50 ©pinions on e:atljctital Bags A fresh and ever readable author. — Neiu Tori Tribune. Irving and Hawthorne seem to us the only travellers in England who have shown such keen insight into the spirit of English life as she does. — Chicago Inter-Ocean. It is no small compliment to say that in its new dress ... it deserves a reception as warm as the first. The cathedrals visited are Salisbury, Wells, Exeter, Chichester, and Winchester, and the illustrations include pictures of all of them, but the real value of the book comes from the author's keen eye for small details of manners, dress, and bearing, speech and voice, necessary for the perfection of an imagined picture of a foreign land. — A^ezo T-jrk Times. There is a freshness, grace, and humor about this description of a tour in Southern England that make every step a pleasure and many scenes a delight. — North American, Philadelphia. Uncommonly interesting. — Buffalo Express. Mrs. Dodd's work remains unique in our list of travel-books, and its pic- tures of the English countryside remain in mind long after the book has been laid aside. A word of commendation should be expressed for the handsome dress given the book in paper, binding and illustrations. — Art Interchange. There is a careful setting forth of facts, historical and otherwise, sand- wiched between personal experiences obtained in an unconventional and alto- gether unguide-book manner, and the combination is irresistible. — Chicago E'vening Post. The author's eye is quick and her hand is sure, whether surrounded by the stately magnificence of a bishop's palace or the loveliness of lonely roads and sunny riversides. The charm is not alone of the subject, but of the fancy wl'.ich brightens the colors of cver\' view. The personal interest is well man- aged, and the little happenings of the way, often mirthful and somctimet provoking, are never given a word too much. — San Francisco Argonaut. THIS BOOK IS DUE ON THE LAST DATE STAMPED BELOW AN INITIAL FINE OF 25 CENTS WILL BE ASSESSED FOR FAILURE TO RETURN THIS BOOK ON THE DATE DUE. THE PENALTY WILL INCREASE TO 50 CENTS ON THE FOURTH DAY AND TO $1.00 ON THE SEVENTH DAY OVERDUE. fEB 12. 1936 SFeb'SIlP F^T^T^*''^- • rv JAN^:4 -561 APR c : ?f 0? - LD 21-100m-8,'34 ^92253 UNIVERSITY OF CALIFORNIA LIBRARY